Aldous Huxley's
BRAVE NEW WORLD
_______________
Chapter I
A squat
grey building of only thirty-four stories.
Over the main entrance the words, CENTRAL LONDON HATCHERY AND CONDITIONING CENTRE, and,
in a shield, the
The enormous room on the ground floor
faced towards the north. Cold for all
the summer beyond the panes, for all the tropical heat of the room itself, a
harsh thin light glared through t he windows, hungrily seeking some draped lay
figure, some pallid shape of academic goose-flesh, but finding only he glass
and nickel and bleakly shining porcelain of a laboratory. Wintriness responded to wintriness. The overalls of the workers were white, their
hands gloved with a pale corpse-coloured rubber. The light was frozen, dead, a ghost. Only from the yellow barrels of the
microscopes did it borrow a certain rich and living substance, lying along the
polished tubes like butter, streak after luscious streak in long recession down
the work tables.
"And this," said the Director
opening the door, "is the Fertilizing Room."
Bent over their instruments, three
hundred Fertilizers were plunged, as the Director of Hatcheries and
Conditioning entered the room, in the scarcely breathing silence, the
absent-minded, soloquizing hum or whistle, of absorbed concentration. A troop of newly arrived students, very
young, pink and callow, followed nervously, rather abjectly, at the Director's
heels. Each of them carried a note-book,
in which, whenever the great man spoke, he desperately scribbled. The D.H.C. for
"Just to give you a general
idea," he would explain to them.
For of course some sort of general idea they must have, if they were to
do their work intelligently - though as little of one, if they were to be good
and happy members of society, as possible.
For particulars, as everyone knows, make for virtue and happiness;
generalities are intellectually necessary evils. Not philosophers, but fret-sawyers and stamp
collectors compose the backbone of society.
"Tomorrow," he would add,
smiling at them with a slightly menacing geniality, "you'll be settling
down to serious work. You won't have
time for generalities. Meanwhile
..."
Meanwhile, it was a privilege. Straight from the horses's mouth into the
note-book. The boys scribbled like mad.
Tall and rather thin but upright, the
Director advanced into the room. He had
a long chin and big, rather prominent teeth, just covered, when he was not
talking, by his full, floridly curved lips.
Old, young? Thirty? fifty?
fifty-five? It was hard to say. And anyhow the question didn't arise; in this
year of stability, A.F. 632, it didn't occur to you to ask it.
"I shall begin at the
beginning," said the D.H.C., and the more zealous students recorded his
intention in their note-books: Begin at the beginning. "These," he waved his hand,
"are the incubators." And
opening an insulated door he showed them racks upon racks of numbered
test-tubes. "The week's supply of
ova. Kept," he explained, "at
blood heat; whereas the male gametes," and here he opened another door,
"they have to be kept at thirty-five instead of thirty-seven. Full blood heat sterilizes." Rams wrapped in thermogene beget no lambs.
Still leaning against the incubators he
gave them, while the pencils scurried illegibly across the pages, a brief
description of the modern fertilizing process; spoke first, of course, of its
surgical introduction - "the operation undergone voluntarily for the good
of Society, not to mention the fact that it carries a bonus amounting to six
months' salary"; continued with some account of the technique for
preserving the excized ovary alive and actively developing; passed on to a
consideration of optimum temperature, salinity, viscosity; referred to the
liquor in which the detached and ripened eggs were kept; and, leading his
charges to the work tables, actually showed them how this liquor was drawn off
from the test-tubes; how it was let out drop by drop on to the specially warmed
slides of the microscopes; how the eggs which it contained were inspected for
abnormalities, counted and transferred to a porous receptacle; how (and he now
took them to watch the operation) this receptacle was immersed in a warm
bouillon containing free-swimming spermatozoa - at a minimum concentration of
one hundred thousand per cubic centimetre, he insisted; and how, after ten
minutes, the contained was lifted out of the liquor and its contents
re-examined; how, if any of the eggs remained unfertilized, it was again
immersed, and, if necessary, yet again; how the fertilized ova went back to the
incubators; where the Alpha and Betas remained until definitely bottled; while
the Gammas, Deltas and Epsilons were brought out again, after only thirty-six
hours, to undergo Bokanovsky's process.
"Bokanovsky's Process,"
repeated the Director, and the students underlined the words in their little
note-books.
One egg, one embryo, one adult -
normality. But a bokanovskified egg will
bud, will proliferate, will divide. From
eight to ninety-six buds, and every bud will grow into a perfectly formed
embryo, and every embryo into a full-sized adult. Making ninety-six human beings grow where
only one grew before. Progress.
"Essentially," the D.H.C.
concluded, "bokanovskification consists of a series of arrests of
development. We check the normal growth
and, paradoxically enough, the egg responds by budding."
Responds by budding. The pencils were busy.
He pointed. On a very slowly moving band a rack-full of
test-tubes was entering a large metal box, another rack-full was emerging. Machinery faintly purred. It took eight minutes for the tubes to go
through, he told them. Eight minutes of
hard X-rays being about as much as an egg can stand. A few died; of the rest, the least
susceptible divided into two; most put out four buds; some eight; all were
returned to the incubators, where the buds began to develop; then, after two
days, were suddenly chilled, chilled and checked. Two, four, eight, the buds in their turn
budded; and having budded were dosed almost to death with alcohol; consequently
burgeoned again and having budded - bud out of bud out of bud were thereafter -
further arrest being generally fatal - left to develop in peace. By which time the original egg was in a fair
way to becoming anything from eight to ninety-six embryos - a prodigious
improvement, you will agree, on nature.
Identical twins - but not in piddling twos and threes as in the old
viviparous, when an egg would sometimes accidentally divide; actually by
dozens, by scores at a time.
"Scores," the Director repeated
and flung out his arms, as though he were distributing largess. "Scores."
But one of the students was fool enough
to ask where the advantage lay.
"My good boy!" The Director wheeled sharply round on
him. "Can't you see? Can't you see?" He raised a hand; his expression was
solemn. "Bokanovsky's Process is
one of the major instruments of social stability!"
Major instruments of social stability.
Standard men and women; in uniform
batches. The whole of a small factory
staffed with the products of a single bokanovskified egg.
"Ninety-six identical twins working
ninety-six identical machines!" The
voice was almost tremulous with enthusiasm.
"You really know where you are.
For the first time in history."
He quoted the planetary motto.
"Community, Identity, Stability." Grand words.
"If we could bokanovskify indefinitely the whole problem would be
solved."
Solved by standard Gammas, unvarying
Deltas, uniform Epsilons. Millions of
identical twins. The principle of mass
production at last applied to biology.
"But, alas," the Director shook
his head, "we can't bokanovskify indefinitely."
Ninety-six seemed to be the limit;
seventy-two a good average. From the
same ovary and with gametes of the same male to manufacture as many batches of
identical twins as possible - that was the best (sadly a second best) that they
could do. And even that was difficult.
"For in nature it takes thirty years
for two hundred eggs to reach maturity.
But our business is to stabilize the population at this moment, here and
now. Dribbling out twins over a quarter
of a century - what would be the use of that?"
Obviously, no use at all. But Podsnap's Technique had immensely
accelerated the process of ripening.
They could make sure of at least a hundred and fifty mature eggs within
two years. Fertilize and bokanovskify -
in other words, multiply by seventy-two - and you get an average of nearly
eleven thousand brothers and sisters in a hundred and fifty batches of
identical twins, all within two years of the same age.
"And in exceptional cases we can
make one ovary yield us over fifteen thousand adult individuals."
Beckoning to a fair-haired, ruddy young man who happened to
be passing at the moment, "Mr Foster," he called. The ruddy young man approached. "Can you tell us the record for a single
ovary, Mr Foster?"
"Sixteen thousand and twelve in this
Centre," Mr Foster replied without hesitation. He spoke very quickly, had a vivacious blue
eye, and took an evident pleasure in quoting figures. "Sixteen thousand and twelve; in one
hundred and eighty-nine batches of identicals.
But of course they've done much better," he rattled on, "in
some of the tropical Centres. Singapore
has often produced over sixteen thousand five hundred; and Mombasa has actually
touched the seventeen thousand mark. But
then they have unfair advantages. You
should see the way a negro ovary responds to pituitary! It's quite astonishing, when you're used to
working with European material.
Still," he added, with a laugh (but the light of combat was in his
eyes and the lift of his chin was challenging), "still, we mean to beat
them if we can. I'm working on a
wonderful Delta-Minus ovary at this moment.
Only just eighteen months old.
Over twelve thousand seven hundred children already, either decanted or
in embryo. And still going strong. We'll beat them yet."
"That's the spirit I like!"
cried the Director, and clapped Mr Foster on the shoulder. "Come along with us and give these boys
the benefit of your expert knowledge."
Mr Foster smiled modestly. "With pleasure." They went.
In the Bottling Room all was harmonious
bustle and ordered activity. Flaps of
fresh sow's peritoneum ready cut to the proper size came shooting up in little
lifts from the Organ Store in the sub-basement.
Whizz and then, click! the lift-hatches flew open; the Bottle-Liner had
only to reach out a hand, take the flap, insert, smooth-down, and before the
lined bottle had had time to travel out of reach along the endless band, whizz,
click! another flap of peritoneum had shot up from the depths, ready to be
slipped into yet another bottle, the next of that slow interminable procession
on the band.
Next to the Liners stood the
Matriculators. The procession advanced;
one by one the eggs were transferred from their text-tubes to the larger
containers; deftly the peritoneal lining was slit, the morula dropped into
place, the saline solution poured in ... and already the bottle had passed, and
it was the turn of the labellers.
Heredity, date of fertilization, membership of Bokanovsky Group -
details were transferred from text-tube to bottle. No longer anonymous, but named, identified,
the procession marched slowly on; on through an opening in the wall, slowly on
into the Social Predestination Room.
"Eighty-eight cubic metres of
card-index," said Mr Foster with relish, as they entered.
"Containing all the relevant
information," added the Director.
"Brought up to date every
morning."
"And co-ordinated every
afternoon."
"On the basis of which they make
their calculations."
"So many individuals, of such and
such quality," said Mr Foster.
"Distributed in such and such
quantities."
"The Optimum Decanting Rate at any
given moment."
"Unforseen wastages promptly made
good."
"Promptly," repeated Mr
Foster. "If you knew the amount of
overtime I had to put in after the last Japanese earthquake!" He laughed good-humouredly and shook his
head.
"The Predestinators send in their
figures to the Fertilizers."
"Who give them the embryos they sake
for."
"And the bottles come in here to be
predestinated in detail."
"After which they are sent down to
the Embryo Store."
"Where we now proceed
ourselves."
And opening a door Mr Foster led the way
down a staircase into the basement.
The temperature was still tropical. They descended into a thickening
twilight. Two doors and a passage with a
double turn ensured the cellar against any possible infiltration of the day.
"Embryos are like photograph
film," said Mr Foster waggishly, as he pushed open the second door. "They can only stand red light."
And in effect the sultry darkness into
which the students now followed him was visible and crimson, like the darkness
of closed eyes on a summer's afternoon.
The bulging flanks of row on receding row and tier above tier of bottles
glinted with innumerable rubies, and among the rubies moved the dim red
spectres of men and women with purple eyes and all the symptoms of lupus. The hum and rattle of machinery faintly
stirred the air.
"Give them a few figures, Mr
Foster," said the Director, who was tired of talking.
Mr Foster was only too happy to give them
a few figures.
Two hundred and twenty metres long, two
hundred wide, ten high. He pointed
upwards. Like chickens drinking, the
students lifted their eyes towards the distant ceiling.
Three tiers of racks: ground-floor level,
first gallery, second gallery.
The spidery steelwork of gallery above
gallery faded away in all directions into the dark. Near them three red ghosts were busily
unloading demijohns from a moving staircase.
The escalator from the Social
Predestination Room.
Each bottle could be placed on one of
fifteen racks, each rack, though you couldn't see it, was a conveyor travelling
at the rate of thirty-three and a third centimetres an hour. Two hundred and sixty-seven days at eight
metres a day. Two thousand one hundred
and thirty-six metres in all. One
circuit of the cellar at ground level, one on the first gallery, half on the
second, and on the two hundred and sixty-seventh morning, daylight in the
Decanting Room. Independent existence -
so called.
"But in the interval," Mr
Foster concluded, "we've managed to do a lot to them. Oh, a very great deal." His laugh was knowing and triumphant.
"That's the spirit I like,"
said the Director once more. "Let's
walk round. You tell them everything, Mr
Foster."
Mr Foster duly told them.
Told them of the growing embryo on its
bed of peritoneum. Made them taste the
rich blood-surrogate on which it fed.
Explained why it had to be stimulated with placentin and thyroxin. Told them of the corpus luteum
extract. Showed them the jets through
which at every twelfth metre from zero to 2040 it was automatically
injected. Spoke of those gradually
increasing doses of pituitary administered during the final ninety-six metres
of their course. Described the
artificial maternal circulation installed on every bottle at metres 112; showed
them the reservoir of blood-surrogate, the centrifugal pump that kept the
liquid moving over the placenta and drove it through the synthetic lung and
waste-product filter. Referred to the
embryo's troublesome tendency to anaemia, tot he massive doses of hog's stomach
extract and foetal foal's liver with which, in consequence, it had to be
supplied.
Showed them the simple mechanism by means
of which, during the last two metres out of every eight, all the embryos were
simultaneously taken into familiarity with movement. Hinted at the gravity of the so-called
'trauma of decanting;, and enumerated the precautions taken to minimize, by a
suitable training of the bottled embryo, that dangerous shock. Told them of the texts for sex carried out in
the neighbourhood of metre 200.
Explained the system of labelling - a T for the males, a circle for the
females and for those who were destined to become freemartins a question mark,
black on a white ground.
"For of course," said Mr Foster,
"in the vast majority of cases, fertility is merely a nuisance. One fertile ovary in twelve hundred - that
would really be quite sufficient for our purposes. But we want to have a good choice. And of course one must always leave an
enormous margin of safety. Se we allow
as many as thirty per cent of the female embryos to develop normally. The others get a dose of male sex-hormone
every twenty--four metres for the rest of the course. Result: they're decanted as freemartins -
structurally quite normal (except," he had to admit, "that they do
have just the slightest tendency to grow beards), but sterile. guaranteed sterile. Which brings us at last," continued Mr
Foster, "out of the realm of mere slavish imitation of nature into the
much more interesting world of human invention."
He
rubbed his hands. For, of course,
they didn't content themselves with merely hatching out embryos: any cow could
do that.
"We also predestine and
condition. We decant our babies as socialized
human beings, as Alphas or Epsilons, as future sewage workers or future
..." He was going to say future World Controllers," but correcting
himself, said "future Directors of Hatcheries" instead.
The D.H.C. acknowledged the compliment
with a smile.
They were passing Metre 320 on Rack
11. A young Beta-Minus mechanic was busy
with screw-driver and spanner on the blood-surrogate pump of a passing
bottle. The hum of the electric motor
deepened by fractions of a tone as he turned the nuts. Down, down ... A final twist, a glance at the
revolution counter, and he was done. He
moved two paces down the line and began the same process on the next pump.
"Reducing the number of revolutions
per minute," Mr Foster explained.
"The surrogate goes round slower; therefore passes through the lung
at longer intervals; therefore gives the embryo less oxygen. Nothing like oxygen-shortage for keeping an
embryo below par." Again he rubbed
his hands.
"But why do you want to keep the
embryo below par?" asked an ingenuous student.
"Ass!" said the Director,
breaking a long silence. "Hasn't it
occurred to you that an Epsilon embryo must have an Epsilon environment as well
as an Epsilon heredity?"
It evidently hadn't occurred to him. He was covered with confusion.
"The lower the caste," said Mr
Foster, "the shorter the oxygen."
The first organ affected was the brain.
And after that the skeleton. At
seventy per sent of normal oxygen you got dwarfs. At less than seventy, eyeless monsters.
"Who are no use at all,"
concluded Mr Foster.
Whereas (his voice became confidential
and eager), if they could discover a technique for shortening the period of
maturation, what a triumph, what a benefaction to Society!
"Consider the horse."
They considered it.
Mature at six; the elephant at ten. While at thirteen a man is not yet sexually
mature; and is only fully grown at twenty.
Hence, of course, that fruit of delayed development, the human intelligence.
"But in Epsilons," said Mr
Foster very justly, "we don't need human intelligence."
Didn't need and didn't get it. But though the Epsilon mind was mature at
ten, the Epsilon body was not fit to work till eighteen. Long years of superfluous and wasted
immaturity. If the physical development
could be speeded up till it was as quick, say, as a cow's, what an enormous
saving to the Community!
"Enormous!" murmured the
students. Mr Foster's enthusiasm was
infectious.
He became rather technical; spoke of the
abnormal endocrine co-ordination which made men grow so slowly; postulated a
germinal mutation to account for it.
Could the effects of this germinal mutation be undone? Could the individual Epsilon embryo be made
to revert, by a suitable technique, to the normality of dogs and cows? That was the problem. And it was all but solved.
Pilkington, at Mombasa, had produced
individuals who were sexually mature at four and full grown at six and a
half. A scientific triumph. But socially useless. Six-year-old men and women were too stupid to
do even Epsilon work. And the process
was an all-or-nothing one; either you failed to modify at all, or else you
modified the whole way. They were still
trying to find the ideal compromise between adults of twenty and adults of six. So far without success. Mr foster sighed and shook his head.
Their wanderings through the crimson
twilight had brought them to the neighbourhood of Metre 170 on Rack 9. From this point onwards Rack 9 was enclosed
and the bottles performed the remainder of their journey in a kind of tunnel,
interrupted here and there by openings two or three metres wide.
"Heat conditioning," said Mr
Foster.
Hot tunnels alternated with cool
tunnels. Coolness was wedded to
discomfort in the form of hard X-rays.
By the time they were decanted the embryos had a horror of cold. They were predestined to emigrate to the
tropics, to be miners and acetate silk spinners and steel workers. Later on their minds would be made to endorse
the judgement of their bodies. "We
condition them to thrive on heat," concluded Mr Foster. "Our colleagues upstairs will teach them
to love it."
"And that," put in the Director
sententiously, "that is the secret of happiness and virtue - liking what
you've got to do. All conditioning aims
at that: making people like their unescapable social destiny."
In a gap between two tunnels, a nurse was
delicately probing with a long fine syringe into the gelatinous contents of a
passing bottle. The students and their
guides stood watching her for a few moments in silence.
"Well, Lenina," said Mr Foster,
when at last she withdrew the syringe and straightened herself up.
The girl turned with a start. One could see that, for all the lupus and the
purple eyes, she was uncommonly pretty.
"Henry!" Her smile flashed redly at him - a row of
coral teeth.
"Charming, charming," murmured
the Director, and, giving her two or three little pats, received in exchange a
rather deferential smile for himself.
"What are you giving them?"
asked Mr Foster, making his tone very professional.
"Oh, the usual typhoid and sleeping
sickness."
"Tropical workers start being
inoculated at metre 150," Mr Foster explained to the students. "The embryos still have gills. We immunize the fish against the future man's
diseases." Then, turning back to
Lenina, "Ten to five on the roof this afternoon," he said, "as
usual."
"Charming," said the Director
once more, and, with a final pat, moved away after the others.
On Rack 10 rows of the next generation's
chemical workers were being trained in the toleration of lead, caustic
soda, tar, chlorine. The first of a batch of two hundred and fifty
embryonic rocket-plane engineers was just passing the eleven hundredth metre
mark on Rack 3. A special mechanism kept
their containers in constant rotation.
"To improve their sense of balance," Mr Foster explained. "Doing repairs on the outside of a
rocket in mid air is a ticklish job. We
slacken off the circulation when they're right way up, so that they're half starved, and double the flow of
surrogate when they're upside down. They
learn to associate topsy-turvydom with well-being; in fact, they're only truly
happy when they're standing on their heads."
"And now," Mr Foster went on,
"I'd like to show you some very interesting conditioning for Alpha-Plus
Intellectuals. We have a big batch of
them on Rack 5. First Gallery
level," he called to two boys who had started to go down to the ground
floor.
"They're round about metre
900," he explained. "You can't
really do any useful intellectual conditioning till the foetuses have lost
their tails. Follow me."
But the Director had looked at his
watch. "Ten to three," he
said. "No time for the intellectual
embryos, I'm afraid. We must go up to
the Nurseries before the children have finished their afternoon sleep."
Mr Foster was disappointed. "At least one glance at the Decanting
Room," he pleaded.
"Very well, then." The Director smiled indulgently. "Just one glance."
Chapter II
Mr
Foster was left in the Decanting Room.
The D.H.C. and his students stepped into the nearest lift and were
carried up to the fifth floor.
INFANT NURSERIES. NEO-PAVLOVIAN CONDITIONING ROOMS,
announced the notice board.
The Director opened a door. They were in a large bare room, very bright and
sunny; for the whole of the southern wall was a single window. Half a dozen nurses, trousered and jacketed
in the regulation white viscose-linen uniform, their hair asceptically hidden
under white caps, were engaged in setting out bowls of roses in a long row
across the floor. Big bowls, packed
tight with blossom. Thousands of petals,
ripe-blown and silkily smooth, like the cheeks of innumerable little cherubs,
but of cherubs, in that bright light, not exclusively pink and Aryan, but also
luminously Chinese, also Mexican, also apoplectic with too much blowing of
celestial trumpets, also pale as death, pale with the posthumous whiteness of
marble.
The nurses stiffened to attention as the
D.H.C. came in.
"Set out the books," he said
curtly.
In silence the nurses obeyed his
command. Between the rose bowls the
books were duly set out - a row of nursery quartos opened invitingly each at
some gaily coloured image of beast or fish or bird.
"Now bring in the children."
They hurried out of the room and returned
in a minute or two, each pushing a kind of tall dumb-waiter laden, on all its
four wire-netted shelves, with eight-month-old babies, all exactly alike (A
Bokanovsky Group, it was evident) and all (since their caste was Delta) dressed
in khaki.
"Put them down on the floor."
The infants were unloaded.
"Now turn them so that they can see
the flowers and books."
Turned, the babies at once fell silent,
then began to crawl towards those clusters of sleek colours, those shapes so gay
and brilliant on the white pages. As
they approached, the sun came out of a momentary eclipse behind a cloud. The roses flamed up as though with a sudden
passion from within; a new and profound significance seemed to suffuse the
shining pages of the books. From the
ranks of the crawling babies came little squeals of excitement, gurgles and
twitterings of pleasure.
The Director rubbed his hands. "Excellent!" he said. "It might almost have been done on
purpose."
The swiftest crawlers were already at
their goal. Small hands reached out
uncertainly, touched, grasped, unpetalling the transfigured roses, crumpling
the illuminated pages of the books. The
Director waited until all were happily busy.
Then, "Watch carefully," he said. And, lifting his hand, he gave the signal.
The Head Nurse, who was standing by a
switchboard at the other end of the room, pressed down a little lever.
There was a violent explosion. Shriller and ever shriller, a siren
shrieked. Alarm bells maddeningly
sounded.
The children started, screamed; their
faces were distorted with terror.
"And now," the Director shouted
(for the noise was deafening), "now we proceed to rub in the lesson with a
milk electric shock."
He waved his hand again, and the Head
Nurse pressed a second lever. The
screaming of the babies suddenly changed its tone. There was something desperate, almost insane,
about the sharp spasmodic yelps to which they now gave utterance. Their little bodies twitched and stiffened;
their limbs moved jerkily as if to the tug of unseen wires.
"We can electrify that whole strip
of floor," bawled the Director in explanation. "But that's enough," he signalled
to the nurse.
The explosions ceased, the bells stopped
ringing, the shriek of the siren died down from tone to tone into silence. The stiffly twitching bodies relaxed, and
what had become the sob and yelp of infant maniacs broadened out once more into
a normal howl of ordinary terror.
"Offer them the flowers and the
books again."
The nurses obeyed; but at the approach of
the roses, at the mere sight of those gaily-coloured images of pussy and
cock-a-doodle-doo and baa-baa black sheep, the infants shrank away in horror;
the volume of their howling suddenly increased.
"Observe," said the Director
triumphantly, "observe."
Books and loud noises, flowers and
electric shocks - already in the infant mind these couples were compromisingly
linked; and after two hundred repetitions of the same or a similar lesson would
be wedded indissolubly. What man has
joined, nature is powerless to put asunder.
"They'll grow up with what the
psychologists used to call an 'instinctive' hatred of books and flowers. Reflexes unalterably conditioned. They'll be safe from books and botany all
their lives." The Director turned
to his nurses. "Take them away
again."
Still yelling, the khaki babies were
loaded on to their dumb-waiters and wheeled out, leaving behind them the smell
of sour milk and a most welcome silence.
One of the students held up his hand; and
though he could see quite well why you couldn't have lower-caste people wasting
the Community's time over books, and that there was always the risk of their
reading something which might undesirably decondition one of their reflexes,
yet ... well, he couldn't understand about the flowers. Why go to the trouble of making it
psychologically impossible for Deltas to like flowers?
Patiently the D.H.C. explained. If the children were made to scream at the
sight of a rose, that was on grounds of high economic policy. Not so very long ago (a century or
thereabouts), Gammas, Deltas, even Epsilons, had been conditioned to like
flowers - flowers in particular and wild nature in general. The idea was to make them want to be going
out into the country at every available opportunity, and so compel them to
consume transport.
"And didn't they consume
transport?" asked the student.
"Quite a lot," the D.H.C.
replied. "But nothing else."
Primroses and landscapes, he pointed out,
have one grave defect: they are gratuitous.
A love of nature keeps no factories busy. It was decided to abolish the love of nature,
at any rate among the lower classes; to abolish the love of nature, but not
the tendency to consume transport. For
of course it was essential that they should keep on going to the country, even
though they hated it. The problem was to
find an economically sounder reason for consuming transport than a mere
affection for primroses and landscapes.
It was duly found.
"We condition the masses to hate the
country," concluded the Director. "But simultaneously we condition them to
love all country sports. At the same
time, we see to it that all country sports shall entail the use of elaborate
apparatus. So that they consume
manufactured articles as well as transport.
Hence those electric shocks."
"I see," said the student, and
was silent, lost in admiration.
There was a silence; then, clearing his
throat, "Once upon a time," the Director began, "while Our Ford
was still on earth, there was a little boy called Reuben Rabinovitch. Reuben was the child of Polish-speaking
parents." The Director interrupted
himself. "You know what Polish is,
I suppose?"
"A dead language."
"Like French and German," added
another student, officiously showing off his learning.
"And 'parent'?" questioned the
D.H.C.
There was an uneasy silence. Several of the boys blushed. They had not yet learned to draw the
significant but often very fine distinction between smut and pure science. One, at last, had the courage to raise a
hand.
"Human beings used to be ..."
he hesitated; the blood rushed to his cheeks.
"Well, they used to be viviparous."
"Quite right." The Director nodded approvingly.
"And when the babies were decanted
..."
"'Born'," came the correction.
"Well, then they were the parents -
I mean, not the babies, of course; the other ones." The poor boy was overwhelmed with confusion.
"In brief," the Director summed
up, "the parents were the father and the mother." The smut that was really science fell with a
crash into the boys; eye-avoiding silence.
"Mother," he repeated loudly, rubbing in the science; and,
leaning back in his chair, "These," he said gravely, "are
unpleasant facts; I know it. But, then,
most historical facts are unpleasant."
He returned to Little Reuben - to Little
Reuben, in whose room, one evening, by an oversight, his father and mother
(crash, crash!) happened to leave the radio turned on.
("For you must remember that in
those days of gross viviparous reproduction, children were always brought up by
their parents and not in State Conditioning Centres.")
While the child was asleep, a broadcast
programme from London suddenly started to come through; and the next morning,
to the astonishment of his crash and crash (the more daring of the boys
ventured to grin at one another), Little Reuben woke up repeating word for word
a long lecture by that curious old writer ("one of the very few whose
works have been permitted to come down to us"), George Bernard Shaw, who
was speaking, according to a well-authenticated tradition, about his own
genius. To Little Reuben's wink and
snigger, this lecture was, of course, perfectly incomprehensible and, imagining
that their child had suddenly gone mad, they sent for a doctor. He, fortunately, understood English,
recognized the discourse as that which Shaw had broadcasted the previous
evening, realized the significance of what had happened, and sent a letter to
the medical press about it.
"The principle of sleep-teaching, or
hypnopaedia, had been discovered."
The D.H.C. made an impressive pause.
The principle had been discovered; but
many, many years were to elapse before that principle was usefully applied.
"The case of Little Reuben occurred
only twenty-three years after Our Ford's first T-Model was put on the
market." (Here the Director made a
sign of the T on his stomach and all the students reverently followed
suit.) "And yet ..."
Furiously the students scribbled. "Hypnopaedia,
first used officially in A.F. 2144. Why
not before? Two reasons. (a) ..."
"These early experimenters,"
the D.H.C. was saying, "were on the wrong track. They thought that hypnopaedia could be made
an instrument of intellectual education ..."
(A small boy asleep on his right side,
the right arm stuck out, the right hand hanging limply over the edge of the
bed. Through a round grating in the side
of a box a voice speaks softly.
"The Nile is the longest river in
Africa and the second in length of all the rivers of the globe. Although falling short of the length of the
Mississippi-Missouri, the Nile is at the head of all rivers as regards the
length of its basin, which extends through 35 degrees of latitude ..."
At breakfast the next morning,
"Tommy," someone says, "do you know which is the longest river
in Africa?" A shaking of the
head. "But don't you remember
something that begins: The Nile is the ..."
"The-Nile-is-the-longest-river-in-Africa-and-the-second-in-length-of-all-the-rivers-of-the-globe
...” The words come rushing out.
"Although-falling-short-of ..."
"Well now, which is the longest
river in Africa?"
The eyes are blank. "I don't know."
"But the Nile, Tommy."
"The-Nile-is-the-longest-river-in-Africa-and-second
..."
Then which river is the longest,
Tommy?"
Tommy bursts into tears. "I don't know," he howls.)
That howl, the director made it plain,
discouraged the earliest investigators.
The experiments were abandoned.
No further attempt was made to teach children the length of the Nile in
their sleep. Quite rightly. You can't learn a science unless you know
what it's all about.
"Whereas, if they'd only started on moral
education," said the Director, leading the way towards the door. The students followed him, desperately
scribbling as they walked and all the way up in the lift. "Moral education, which ought never, in
any circumstances, to be rational"
"Silence, silence," whispered a
loudspeaker as they stepped out at the fourteenth floor, and "Silence,
silence," the trumpet mouths indefatigably repeated at intervals down
every corridor. The students and even
the Director himself rose automatically to the tips of their toes. They were Alphas, of course; but even Alphas
have been well conditioned.
"Silence, silence." All
the air of the fourteenth floor was sibilant with the categorical imperative.
Fifty yards of tiptoeing brought them to
a door which the Director cautiously opened.
They stepped over the threshold into the twilight of a shuttered
dormitory. Eighty cots stood in a row
against the wall. There was a sound of
light regular breathing and a continuous murmur, as of very faint voices
remotely whispering.
A nurse rose as they entered and came to
attention before the Director.
"What's the lesson this
afternoon?" he asked.
"We had Elementary Sex for the first
forty minutes," she answered.
"But now it's switched over to Elementary Class
Consciousness."
The Director walked slowly down the long
line of cots. Rosy and relaxed with
sleep, eighty little boys and girls lay softly breathing. There was a whisper under every pillow. The D.H.C. halted and, bending over one of
the little beds, listened attentively.
"Elementary Class Consciousness, did
you say? Let's have it repeated a little
louder by the trumpet."
At the end of the room a loudspeaker
projected from the wall. The director
walked up to it and pressed a switch.
“... all wear green," said a soft
but very distinct voice, beginning in the middle of a sentence, "and Delta
children weak khaki. Oh no, I don't want
to play with Delta children. And
Epsilons are still worse. They're too stupid
to be able to read or write. Besides,
they wear black, which is such a beastly colour. I'm so glad I'm a Beta."
There was a pause; then the voice began
again.
"Alpha children wear grey. They work much harder than we do, because
they're so frightfully clever. I'm
really awfully glad I'm a Beta, because I don't work so hard. And then we are much better than the Gammas
and Deltas. Gammas are stupid. They all wear green, and Delta children wear
khaki. Oh no, I don't want to
play with Delta children. And Epsilons
are still worse. They're too stupid to
be able ..."
The Director pushed back the switch. The voice was silent. Only its thin ghost continued to mutter from
beneath the eighty pillows.
"They'll have that repeated forty or
fifty times more before they wake; then again on Thursday, and again on
Saturday. A hundred and twenty times
three times a week for thirty months.
After which they go on to a more advanced lesson."
Roses and electric shocks, the khaki of
Deltas and a whiff of asafoetida - wedded indissolubly before the child can
speak. But wordless conditioning is
crude and wholesale; cannot bring home the finer distinctions, cannot inculcate
the more complex courses of behaviour.
For that there must be words, but words without reason. In brief, hypnopaedia.
"The greatest moralizing and
socializing force of all time."
The students took it down in their little
books. Straight from the horse's mouth.
Once more the Director touched the
switch.
" ... so frightfully clever,"
the soft, insinuating, indefatigable voice was saying. "I'm really awfully glad I'm a Beta,
because ..."
Not so much like drops of water, though
water, it is true, can wear holes in the hardest granite; rather, drops of
liquid sealing-wax, drops that adhere, incrust, incorporate themselves with
what they fall on, till finally the rock is all one scarlet blob.
"Till at last the child's mind is
these suggestions, and the sum of the suggestions is the child's
mind. And not the child's mind
only. The adult's mind too - all his
life long. The mind that judges and
desires and decides - made up of these suggestions. but all these suggestions are our
suggestions!" The Director almost
shouted in his triumph.
"Suggestions from the State."
He banged the nearest table.
"It therefore follows ..."
A noise made him turn round.
"Oh, Ford!" he said in another
tone, "I've gone and woken the children."
Chapter III
Outside,
in the garden, it was playtime. Naked in
the warm June sunshine, six or seven hundred little boys and girls were running
with shrill yells over the lawns, or playing ball games, or squatting silently
in twos and threes among the flowering shrubs.
The roses were in bloom, two nightingales soliloquized in the boskage, a
cuckoo was just going out of tune among the lime trees. The air was drowsy with the murmur of bees
and helicopters.
The Director and his students stood for a
short time watching a game of Centrifugal Bubble-puppy. Twenty children were grouped in a circle
round a chrome-steel tower. A ball
thrown up so as to land on the platform at the top of the tower rolled down
into the interior, fell on a rapidly revolving disk, was hurled through one or
other of the numerous apertures pierced in the cylindrical casing, and had to
be caught.
"Strange," mused the Director,
as they turned away, "strange to think that even in Our Ford's day most
games were played without more apparatus than a ball or two and a few sticks
and perhaps a bit of netting. Imagine
the folly of allowing people to play elaborate games which do nothing whatever
to increase consumption. It's
madness. Nowadays the Controllers won't
approve of any new game unless it can be shown that it requires at least as
much apparatus as the most complicated of existing games." He interrupted himself.
"That's a charming little
group," he said, pointing.
In a little grassy bay between tall
clumps of Mediterranean heather, two children, a little boy of about seven and
a little girl who might have been a year older, were playing, very gravely and
with all the focused attention of scientists intent on a labour of discovery, a
rudimentary sexual game.
"Charming, charming!" the
D.H.C. repeated sentimentally.
`"Charming,"
the boys politely agreed. But their
smile was rather patronizing. They had
put aside similar childish amusements too recently to be able to watch them now
without a touch of contempt. charming?
but it was just a pair of kids foolish about; that was all. Just kids.
"I always think," the Director
was continuing in the same rather maudlin tone, when he was interrupted by a
loud boo-hooing.
From a neighbouring shrubbery emerged a
nurse, leading by the hand a small boy, who howled as he went. An anxious-looking little girl trotted at her
heels.
"What's the matter?" asked the
Director.
The nurse shrugged her shoulders. "Nothing much," she answered. "It's just that this little boy seems
rather reluctant to join in the ordinary erotic play. I'd noticed it once or twice before. And now again today. He started yelling just now ..."
"Honestly," put in the
anxious-looking little girl, "I didn't mean to hurt him or anything. Honestly."
"Of course you didn't, dear,"
said the nurse reassuringly. "And
so," she went on, turning back tot he Director, "I'm taking him in to
see the Assistant Superintendent of Psychology.
Just to see if anything's at all abnormal."
"Quite right," said the
Director. "Take him in. You stay here, little girl," he added,
as the nurse moved away with her still howling charge. "What's your name?"
"Polly Trotsky."
"And a very good name too,"
said the director. "Run away now
and see if you can find some other little boy to play with."
The child scampered off into the bushes
and was lost to sight.
"Exquisite little creature!"
said the Director, looking after her.
Then, turning to his students, "What I'm going to tell you
now," he said, "may sound incredible.
But then, when you're not accustomed to history, most facts about the
past do sound incredible."
He let out the amazing truth. For a very long period before the time of Our
Ford, and even for some generations afterwards, erotic play between children
had been regarded as abnormal (there was a roar of laughter); and not only
abnormal, actually immoral (no!): and had therefore been rigorously suppressed.
A look of astonished incredulity appeared
on the faces of his listeners. Poor
little kids not allowed to amuse themselves?
They could not believe it.
"Even adolescents," the D.H.C.
was saying, "even adolescents like yourselves ..."
"Not possible!"
"Barring a little surreptitious
auto-eroticism and homosexuality - absolutely nothing."
"Nothing?"
"In most cases, till they were over
twenty years old."
"Twenty years old?" echoed the students
in a chorus of loud disbelief.
"Twenty," the Director
repeated. "I told you that you'd
find it incredible."
"But what happened?" they
asked. "What were the
results?"
"The results were
terrible." A deep resonant voice
broke startlingly into the dialogue.
They looked round. On the fringe of the little group stood a
stranger - a man of middle height, black-haired, with a hooked nose, full red
lips, eyes very piercing and dark. "Terrible,"
he repeated.
The D.H.C. had at that moment sat down on
one of the steel and rubber benches conveniently scattered through the gardens;
but at the sight of the stranger, he sprang to his feet and darted forward, his
hands outstretched, smiling with all his teeth, effusive.
"Controller! What an unexpected pleasure! Boys, what are you thinking of! This is the Controller; this is his fordship,
Mustapha Mond."
In the four thousand rooms of the Centre
the four thousand electric clocks simultaneously struck four. Discarnate voices called from the trumpet mouths.
"Main Day-shift off duty. Second Day-shift take over. Main Day-shift off ..."
In the lift, on their way up to the changing-rooms, Henry Foster
and the Assistant Director of Predestination rather pointedly turned their
backs on Bernard Marx from the Psychological Bureau: averted themselves from
that unsavoury reputation.
The faint hum and rattle of machinery
still stirred the crimson air in the Embryo Store. Shifts might come and go, one lupus-coloured
face give place to another; majestically and for ever the conveyors crept
forward with their load of future men and women.
Lenina Crowne walked briskly towards the
door.
His fordship Mustapha Mond! The eyes of the saluting students almost
popped out of their heads. Mustapha
Mond! The Resident Controller for
Western Europe! One of the Ten World
Controllers. One of the Ten ... and he
sat down on the bench with the D.H.C., he was going to stay, to stay, yes, and
actually talk to them ... straight from the horse's mouth. Straight from the mouth of Ford himself.
Two shrimp-brown children emerged from a
neighbouring shrubbery, stared at them for a moment with large, astonished
eyes, then returned to their amusements among the leaves.
"You all remember," said the
Controller, in his strong deep voice, "you all remember, I suppose, that
beautiful and inspired saying of Our Ford's: History is bunk. History," he repeated slowly, "is
bunk."
He waved his hand; and it was as though,
with an invisible feather whisk, he had brushed away a little dust, and the
dust was Harappa, was Ur of the Chaldees; some spider-webs, and they were
Thebes and Babylon and Knossos and
Mycenae. Whisk, whisk - and where
was Odysseus, where was Job, where were Jupiter and Gotama and Jesus? Whisk - and those specks of antique dirt
called Athens and Rome, Jerusalem and the Middle Kingdom - all were gone. Whisk - the place where Italy had been was
empty. Whisk, the cathedrals; whisk,
whisk, King Lear and the Thoughts of Pascal.
Whisk, Passion; whisk, Requiem; whisk, Symphony; whisk ...
"Going to the Feelies this evening,
Henry?" enquired the Assistant Predestinator. "I hear the new one at the Alhambra is
first-rate. There's a love scene on a bearskin
rug; they say it's marvellous. Every
hair of the bear reproduced. The most
amazing tactual effects."
"That's why you're taught no
history," the Controller was saying.
"But now the time has come ..."
The
D.H.C. looked at him nervously.
There were those strange rumours of old forbidden books hidden in a safe
in the Controller's study. Bibles,
poetry - Ford knew what.
Mustapha Mond intercepted his anxious
glance and the corners of his red lips twitched ironically.
"It's all right, Director," he
said in a tone of faint derision, "I won't corrupt them."
The D.H.C. was overwhelmed with
confusion.
Those who feel themselves despised do
well to look despising. The smile of
Bernard Marx's face was contemptuous.
Every hair on the bear indeed!
"I shall make a point of
going," said Henry Foster.
Mustapha Mond leaned forward, shook a
finger at them. "Just try to
realize it," he said, and his voice sent a strange thrill quivering along
their diaphragms. "Try to realize
what it was like to have a viviparous mother."
That smutty word again. But none of them dreamed, this time, of
smiling.
"Try to imagine what 'living with
one's family' meant."
They tried; but obviously without the
smallest success.
"And do you know what a 'home'
was?"
They shook their heads.
From her dim crimson cellar Lenina Crowne
shot up seventeen stories, turned to the right as she stepped out of the lift,
walked down a long corridor and, opening the door marked GIRLS' DRESSING-ROOM,
plunged into a deafening chaos of arms and bosoms and underclothing. Torrents of hot water were splashing into or
gurgling out of a hundred baths.
Rumbling and hissing, eight vibro-vacuum massage machines were
simultaneously kneading and sucking the firm and sunburnt flesh of eight superb
female specimens. Everyone was talking
at the top of her voice. A Synthetic
Music machines was warbling out a super-cornet solo.
"Hullo, Fanny," said Lenina to
the young woman who had to pegs and locker next to hers.
Fanny worked in the Bottling Room, and
her surname was also Crowne. But as the
two thousand million inhabitants of the planet had only ten thousand names
between them, the coincidence was not particularly surprising.
Lenina pulled at her zippers - downwards
on the jacket, downwards with a double-handed gesture at the two that held
trousers, downwards again to loosen her undergarment. Still wearing her shoes and stockings, she
walked off towards the bathrooms.
Home, home - a few small rooms,
stiflingly over-inhabited by a man, by a periodically teeming woman, by a
rabble of boys and girls of all ages. No
air, no space; an understerilized prison; darkness, disease, and smells.
(The Controller's evocation was so vivid
that one of the boys, more sensitive than the rest, turned pale at the mere
description and was on the point of being sick.)
Lenina got out of the bath, towelled
herself dry, took hold of a long flexible tube plugged into the wall, presented
the nozzle to her breast, as though she meant to commit suicide, and pressed
down the trigger. A blast of warmed air
dusted her with the finest talcum powder.
Eight different scents and eau-de-Cologne were laid on in little taps
over the washbasin. She turned on the
third from the left, dabbled herself with chypre and, carrying her shoes and
stockings in her hand, went out to see if one of the vibro-vacuum machines were
free.
And home was ass squalid psychically as
physically. Psychically, it was a rabbit
hold, a midden, hot with the frictions of tightly packed life, reeking with
emotion. What suffocating intimacies,
what dangerous, insane, obscene relationships between the members of the family
group! Maniacally, the mother brooded
over her children (her children) ... brooded over them like a cat over
its kittens; but a cat that could talk, a cat that could say, "My baby, my
baby," over and over again.
"My baby, and oh, oh, at my breast, the little hands, the hunger,
and that unspeakable agonizing pleasure!
Till at last my baby sleeps, my baby sleeps with a bubble of white milk
at the corner of his mouth. My little
baby sleeps ..."
"Yes," said Mustapha Mond,
nodding his head, "you may well shudder."
"Who are you going out with
tonight?" Lenina asked, returning from the vibro-vac like a pearl
illuminated from within, pinkly glowing.
"Nobody."
Lenina raised her eyebrows in
astonishment.
"I've been feeling rather out of
sorts lately," Fanny explained.
"Dr Wells advised me to have a Pregnancy Substitute."
"But, my dear, you're only
nineteen. The first Pregnancy Substitute
isn't compulsory till twenty-one."
"I know, dear. But some people are better if they begin
earlier. Dr Wells told me that brunettes
with wide pelvises like me, ought to have their first Pregnancy Substitute at
seventeen. So I'm really two years late,
not two years early." She opened
the door of her locker and pointed to the row of boxes and labelled phials on
the upper shelf.
"SYRUP OF CORPUS LUTEUM." Lenina read the names aloud. "OVARIN, GUARANTEED
FRESH:
NOT TO BE USED AFTER AUGUST
1ST, A.F. 632. MAMMARY GLAND EXTRACT: TO
BE TAKEN THREE TIMES DAILY, BEFORE MEALS, WITH
A
LITTLE WATER. PLACENTIN: 5CC TO
BE
INJECTED INTRAVENALLY EVERY THIRD DAY ...
"Ugh!" Lenina shuddered.
"How I loathe intravenals, don't you?"
"Yes. But when they do one good ..." Fanny was a particularly sensible girl.
Our Ford - or Our Freud, as, for some
inscrutable reason, he chose to call himself whenever he spoke of psychological
matters - Our Freud had been the first to reveal the appalling dangers of
family life. The world was fully of
fathers - was therefore full of misery; full of mothers - therefore of every
kind of perversion from sadism to chastity; full of brothers, sisters, uncles,
aunts - full of madness and suicide.
"And yet, among the savages of
Samoa, in certain islands off the coast of New Guinea ..."
The tropical sunshine lay like warm honey
on the naked bodies of children tumbling promiscuously among the hibiscus
blossoms. Home was in any one of twenty
palm-thatched houses. In the Trobriands
conception was the work of ancestral ghosts; nobody had every heard of a
father.
"Extremes," said the
Controller, "meet. For the good
reason that they were made to meet."
"Dr Wells says that a three months'
Pregnancy Substitute now will make all the difference to my health for the next
three or four years."
"Well, I hope he's right," said
Lenina. "But, Fanny, do you really
mean to say that for the next three months you're not supposed to ..."
"Oh no, dear. Only for a week or two, that's all. I shall spend the evening at the Club playing
Musical Bridge. I suppose you're going
out?"
Lenina nodded.
"Who with?"
"Henry Foster."
"Again?" Fanny's kind, rather moon-like face took on
an incongruous expression of pained and disapproving astonishment. "Do you mean to tell me you're still
going out with Henry Foster?"
Mothers and fathers, brothers and
sisters. But there were also husbands,
wives, lovers. There was also monogamy
and romance.
"Though you probably don't know what
those are," said Mustapha Mond.
They shook their heads.
Family, monogamy, romance. Everywhere exclusiveness, everywhere a
focusing of interest, a narrow channelling of impulse and energy.
"But everyone belongs to everyone
else," he concluded, citing the hypnopaedic proverb.
The students nodded, emphatically
agreeing with a statement which upwards of sixty-two thousand repetitions in
the dark had made them accept, not merely as true, but as axiomatic,
self-evident, utterly indisputable.
"But after all," Lenina was
protesting, "it's only about four months now since I've been having
Henry."
"Only four months! I like that.
And what's more," Fanny went on, pointing an accusing finger,
"there's been nobody else except Henry all that time. Has there?"
Lenina blushed scarlet; but her eyes, the
tone of her voice remained defiant.
"No, there hasn't been anyone else," she answered almost
truculently. "And I jolly well
don't see why there should have been."
"Oh, she jolly well doesn't see why
there should have been," Fanny repeated, as though to an invisible
listener behind Lenina's left shoulder.
Then, with a sudden change of tone, "But seriously," she said,
"I really do think you ought to be careful. It's such horribly bad form to go on and on
like this with one man. At forty, or
thirty-five, it wouldn't be so bad. But
at your age, Lenina! No, it
really won't do. And you know how
strongly the D.H.C. objects to anything intense or long-drawn. Four months of Henry Foster, without having
another man - why, he'd be furious if he knew ..."
"Think of water under pressure in a
pipe." They thought of it. "I pierce it once," said the
Controller. "What a jet!"
He pierced it twenty times. There were twenty piddling little fountains.
"My baby. My baby ...!"
"Mother!" The madness is infectious.
"My love, my one and only, precious,
precious ..."
Mother, monogamy, romance. High spurts the fountain; fierce and foamy
the wild jet. The urge has but a single
outlet. My love, my baby. No wonder those poor pre-moderns were mad and
wicked and miserable. Their world didn't
allow them to take things easily, didn't allow them to be sane, virtuous,
happy. What with mothers and lovers,
what with the prohibitions they were not conditioned to obey, what with the
temptations and the lonely remorses, what with all the diseases and the endless
isolating pain, what with the uncertainties and the poverty - they were forced
to feel strongly. And feeling strongly
(and strongly, what was more, in solitude, in hopelessly individual isolation),
how could they be stable?
"Of course there's no need to give
him up. Have somebody else from time to
time, that's all. He has other girls,
doesn't he?"
Lenina admitted it.
"Of course he does. Trust Henry Foster to be the perfect
gentleman - always correct. And then
there's the Director to think of. You
know what a stickler ..."
Nodding.
"He patted me on the behind this afternoon," said Lenina.
"There, you see!" Fanny was triumphant. "That shows what he stands
for. The strictest conventionality."
"Stability," said the
Controller, "stability. No
civilization without social stability.
No social stability without individual stability." His voice was a trumpet. Listening, they felt larger, warmer.
The machine turns, turns and must keep on
turning - for ever. It is death if it
stands still. A thousand millions
scrabbled the crust of the earth. The
wheels began to turn. In a hundred and
fifty years there were two thousand millions.
Stop all the wheels. In a hundred
and fifty weeks there are once more only a thousand millions; a thousand
thousand thousand men and women have starved to death.
Wheels must turn steadily, but cannot
turn untended. There must be men to tend
them, men as steady as the wheels upon their axles, sane men, obedient men,
stable in contentment.
Crying: My baby, my mother, my only, only
love; groaning: My sin, my terrible God; screaming with pain, muttering with
fever, bemoaning old age and poverty - how can they tend the wheels? And if they cannot tend the wheels ... the
corpses of a thousand thousand thousand men and women would be hard to bury or
burn.
"And after all," Fanny's tone
was coaxing, "it's not as though there were anything painful or
disagreeable about having one or two men besides Henry. And seeing that, you ought to be a
little more promiscuous ..."
"Stability," insisted the
Controller, "stability. The primal
and the ultimate need. Stability. Hence all this."
With a wave of his hand he indicated the
gardens, the huge building of the Conditioning Centre, the naked children
furtive in the undergrowth or running across the lawns.
Lenina shook her head. "Somehow," she mused, "I
hadn't been feeling very keen on promiscuity lately. There are times when one doesn't. Haven't you found that too, Fanny?"
Fanny nodded her sympathy and
understanding. "But one's got to
make the effort," she said sententiously, "one's got to play the
game. After all, everyone belongs to
everyone else."
"Yes, everyone belongs to everyone else,"
Lenina repeated slowly and, sighing, was silent for a moment; then, taking
Fanny's hand, gave it a little squeeze.
"You're quite right, Fanny.
As usual. I'll make the
effort."
Impulse arrested spills over, and the
flood is feeling, the flood is passion, the flood is even madness: it depends
on the force of the current, the height and strength of the barrier. The unchecked stream flows smoothly down its
appointed channels into a calm well-being.
(The embryo is hungry; day in, day out, the blood-surrogate pump
unceasingly turn its eight hundred revolutions a minute. The decanted infant howls; at once a nurse
appears with a bottle of external secretion.
Feeling lurks in that interval of time between desire and its
consummation. Shorten that interval,
break down all those old unnecessary barriers.
"Fortunate boys!" said the
Controller. "No pains have been
spared to make your lives emotionally easy - to preserve you, so far as that is
possible, from having emotions at all."
"Ford's in his flivver,"
murmured the D.H.C. "All's well
with the world."
"Lenina Crowne?" said Henry
Foster, echoing the Assistant Predestinator's question as he zipped up his
trousers. "Oh, she's a splendid
girl. Wonderfully pneumatic. I'm surprised you haven't had her."
"I can't think how it is I
haven't," said the Assistant Predestinator. "I certainly will. At the first opportunity."
From his place on the opposite side of
the changing-room aisle, Bernard Marx overheard what they were saying and
turned pale.
"And to tell the truth," said
Lenina, "I'm beginning to get just a tiny bit bored with nothing but Henry
every day." She pulled on her left
stocking. "Do you know Bernard
Marx?" she asked in a tone whose excessive casualness was evidently
forced.
Fanny looked startled. "You don't mean to say ...?"
"Who not? Bernard's an Alpha-Plus. Besides, he asked me to go to one of the
Savage Reservations with him. I've
always wanted to see a Savage Reservation."
"But his reputation?"
"What do I care about his reputation?"
"They say he doesn't like Obstacle
Golf."
"They say, they say," mocked
Lenina.
"And then he spends most of his time
by himself - alone." There
was horror in Fanny's voice.
"Well, he won't be alone when he's
with me. Any anyhow, why are people so
beastly to him? I think he's rather
sweet." She smiled to herself; how
absurdly shy he had been! Frightened
almost - as though she were a World Controller and he a Gamma-Minus machine
minder.
"Consider your own lives," said
Mustapha Mond. "Has any of you
every encountered an insurmountable obstacle?"
The question was answered by a negative
silence.
"Has any of you been compelled to
live through a long time-interval between the consciousness of a desire and its
fulfilment?"
"Well," began one of the boys,
and hesitated.
"Speak up," said the
D.H.C. "Don't keep his fordship
waiting."
"I once had to wait nearly four
weeks before a girl I wanted would let me have her."
"And you felt a strong emotion in
consequence?"
"Horrible!"
"Horrible; precisely," said the
Controller. "Our ancestors were so
stupid and short-sighted that when the first reformers came along and offered
to deliver them from those horrible emotions, they wouldn't have anything to do
with them."
"Talking about her as though she
were a bit of meat." Bernard ground
his teeth. "Have her here, have her
there. Like mutton. Degrading her to so much mutton. She said she'd think it over, she said she'd
give me an answer this week. Oh, Ford,
Ford, Ford." He would have liked to
go up to them and hit them in the face - hard, again and again.
"Yes, I really do advise you to try
her," Henry Foster was saying.
"Take Ectogenesis. Pfitzner and Kawaguchi had got the whole
technique worked out. But would the
Governments look at it? No. There was something called Christianity. Women were forced to go on being
viviparous."
"He's so ugly!" said Fanny.
"But I rather like his looks."
"And then so small." Fanny made a grimace; smallness was so
horribly and typically low-caste.
"I think that's rather sweet,"
said Lenina. "One feels one would
like to pet him. You know. Like a cat."
Fanny was shocked. "They say somebody made a mistake when
he was still in the bottle - thought he was a Gamma and put alcohol into his blood-surrogate. That's why he's so stunted."
"What nonsense!" Lenina was indignant.
"Sleep teaching was actually
prohibited in England. There was
something called liberalism. Parliament,
if you know what that was, passed a law again it. The records survive. Speeches about liberty of the subject. Liberty to be inefficient and miserable. Freedom to be a round peg in a square hole."
"But, my dear chap, you're welcome,
I assure you. You're
welcome." Henry Foster patted the
Assistant Predestinator on the shoulder.
"Everyone belongs to everyone else, after all."
One hundred repetitions three nights a
week for four years, though Bernard Marx, who was a specialist on
hypnopaedia. Sixty-two thousand four
hundred repetitions make one truth.
Idiots!
"Or the Caste System. Constantly proposed, constantly
rejected. There was something called
democracy. As though men were more than
physico-chemically equal."
"Well, all I
can say is that I'm going to accept his invitation."
Bernard hated them, hated them. But they were two, they were large, they were
strong.
"The Nine
Years' War began in A.F. 141."
"Not even if
it were true about the alcohol in his blood-surrogate."
"Phosgene, chloropicrin, ethyl
iodoacetate, diphenylcyanarsine, trichlormethyl chloroformate, dichlorethyl
sulphide. Not to mention hydrocyanic
acid."
"Which I
simply don't believe in," Lenina concluded.
"The noise of fourteen thousand
aeroplanes advancing in open order. But
in the Kurfurstendamm and the Eight Arrondissement, the explosion of the
anthrax bombs is hardly louder than the popping of a paper bag."
"Because I do
want to see a Savage Reservation."
CH3C6H2(NO2)3+Hg(CNO)2 = well,
what? An enormous hole in the ground, a
pile of masonry, some bits of flesh and mucus, a foot, with the boot still on
it, flying through the air and landing, flop, in the middle of the geraniums -
the scarlet ones: such a splendid show that summer!
"You're
hopeless, Lenina, I give you up."
"The Russian technique for infecting
water supplies was particularly ingenious."
Back turned to back, Fanny and Lenina
continued their changing in silence.
"The Nine Years' War, the great
Economic Collapse. There was a choice
between World Control and destruction.
Between stability and ..."
"Fanny
Crowne's a nice girl too," said the Assistant Predestinator.
In the nurseries, the Elementary Class
Consciousness lesson was over, the voices were adapting future demand to future
industrial supply. "I do love
flying," they whispered, "I do love flying, I do love having new
clothes, I do love ..."
"Liberalism, of course, was dead of
anthrax, but all the same you couldn't do things by force."
"No nearly so
pneumatic as Lenina. Oh, not
nearly."
"But old clothes are beastly,"
continued the untiring whisper. "We
always throw away old clothes. Ending is
better than mending, ending is better than mending, ending is better ..."
"Government's an affair of sitting,
not hitting. You rule with the brains
and the buttocks, never with the fists.
For example, there was the conscription of consumption."
"There, I' ready," said Lenina;
but Fanny remained speechless and averted.
"let's make peace, Fanny darling."
"Every man, woman and child
compelled to consume so much a year. In
the interests of industry. The sole
result ..."
"Ending is better than mending. The more stitches, the less riches; the more
stitches ..."
"One of these days," said
Fanny, with dismal emphasis, "you'll get into trouble."
"Conscientious objection on an
enormous scale. Anything not to
consume. Back to nature."
"I do love
flying, I do love flying."
"Back to culture. Yes, actually to culture. You can't consume much if you sit still and
read books."
"Do I look all right?" Lenina asked. Her jacket was made of bottle-green acetate
cloth with green viscose fur at the cuffs and collar.
"Eight hundred Simple Lifers were
mowed down by machine guns at Golders Green."
"Ending is
better than mending, ending is better than mending."
Green corduroy shorts and white
viscose-woollen stockings turned down below the knee.
"Then came the famous British Museum
Massacre. Two thousand culture fans
gassed with dichlorethyl sulphide."
A green-and-white jockey cap shaded
Lenina's eyes; her shoes were bright green and highly polished.
"In the end," said Mustapha
Mond, "the Controllers realized that force was no good. The slower but infinitely surer methods of
ectogenesis, neo-Pavlovian conditioning and hypnopaedia ..."
And round her waist she wore a
silver-mounted green morocco-surrogate cartridge belt, bulging (for Lenina was
not a freemartin) with the regulation supply of contraceptives.
"The discoveries of Pfitzner and
Kawaguchi were at last made use of. An
intensive propaganda against viviparous reproduction ..."
"Perfect!" cried Fanny
enthusiastically. She could never resist
Lenina's charm for long. "And what
a perfectly sweet Malthusian belt!"
"Accompanied by a campaign against
the Past; by the closing of museums, the blowing up of historical monuments
(luckily most of them had already been destroyed during the Nine Years' War);
by the suppression of all books published before A.F. 150."
"I simply must
get one like it," said Fanny.
"There were some
things called the pyramids, for example."
"My old
black-patent bandolier ..."
"And a man
called Shakespeare. You've never heard
of them, of course."
"It's an
absolute disgrace - that bandolier of mine."
"Such are the
advantages of a really scientific education."
"The more
stitches the less riches; the more stitches the less ..."
"The
introduction of Our Ford's first T-Model ..."
"I've had it
nearly three months."
"Chosen as the
opening date of the new era."
"Ending is
better than mending; ending is better ..."
"There was a
thing, as I've said before, called Christianity."
"Ending is
better than mending."
"The ethics
and philosophy of under-consumption ..."
"I love new
clothes, I love new clothes, I love ..."
"So essential when there was
under-production; but in an age of machines and the fixation of nitrogen -
positively a crime against society."
"Henry Foster
gave it me."
"All crosses had their tops cut and
became T's. There was also a thing
called God."
"It's real
morocco-surrogate."
"We have the World State now. And Ford's Day celebrations, and Community
Sings, and Solidarity Services."
"Ford, how I
hate them!" Bernard Marx was thinking.
"There was a thing called Heaven;
but all the same they used to drink enormous quantities of alcohol."
"Like meat,
like so much meat.
"There was a
thing called the soul and a thing called immortality."
"Do ask Henry
where he got it."
"But they used
to take morphia and cocaine."
"And what makes
it worse, she thinks of herself as meat."
"Two thousand pharmacologists and
biochemists were subsidized in A.F. 178."
"He does look glum," said the
Assistant Predestinator, pointing at Bernard Marx.
"Six years
later it was being produced commercially.
The perfect drug."
"Let's bait
him."
"Euphoric,
narcotic, pleasantly hallucinant."
"Glum, Marx, glum." The clap on the shoulder made him start, look
up. It was that brute Henry Foster. "What you need is a gramme of soma."
"All the advantages
of Christianity and alcohol; none of their defects."
"Ford, I should like to kill
him!" But all he did was to say,
"No, thank you," and fend off the proffered tube of tablets.
"Take a holiday from reality
whenever you like, and come back without so much as a headache or a
mythology."
"Take
it," insisted Henry Foster, "take it."
"Stability was
practically assured."
"Once cubic centimetre cures ten
gloomy sentiments," said the Assistant Predestinator, citing a piece of homely
hypnopaedic wisdom.
"It only
remained to conquer old age."
"Damn you,
damn you!" shouted Bernard Marx.
"Hoity-toity."
"Gonadal
hormones, transfusion of young blood, magnesium salts ..."
"And do remember that a gramme is
better than a damn." They went out,
laughing.
"All the physiological stigmata of
old age have been abolished. And along
with them, of course ..."
"Don't forget
to ask him about that Malthusian belt," said Fanny.
"Along with them all the old man's
mental peculiarities. Characters remain
constant throughout a whole lifetime."
“... two rounds of Obstacle Golf to get
through before dark. I must fly."
"Work, play - at sixty our powers
and tastes are what they were at seventeen.
Old men in the bad old days used to renounce, retire, take to religion,
spend their time reading, thinking - thinking!"
"idiots, swine!" Bernard Marx
was saying to himself, as he walked down the corridor to the lift.
"Now - such is progress - the old men
work, the old men copulate, the old men have no time, no leisure from pleasure,
not a moment to sit down and think - or if ever by some unlucky chance such a
crevice of time should yawn in the solid substance of their distractions, there
is always soma, delicious soma, half a gramme for a half-holiday,
a gramme for a weekend, two grammes for a trip to the gorgeous East, three for
a dark eternity on the moon; returning whence they find themselves on the other
side of the crevice, safe on the solid ground of daily labour and distraction,
scampering from feely to feely, from girl to pneumatic girl, from
Electro-magnetic Golf Course to ..."
"Go away, little girl," shouted
the D.H.C. angrily. "Go away,
little boy! Can't you see that his
fordship's busy? Go and do your erotic
play somewhere else."
"Poor little
children!" said the Controller.
Slowly, majestically, with a faint
humming of machinery, the Conveyors moved forward, thirty-three centimetres an
hour. In the red darkness glinted
innumerable rubies.
Chapter IV
1
The lift
was crowded with men from the Alpha Changing Rooms, and Lenina's entry was
greeted by many friendly nods and smiles.
She was a popular girl and, at one time or another, had spent a night
with almost all of them.
They were dear boys, she thought, as she
returned their salutations. Charming
boys! Still, she did wish that George
Edzel's ears weren't quite so big (perhaps he'd been given just a spot too much
parathyroid at metre 328?). And looking
at Benito Hoover, she couldn't help remembering that he was really too
hairy when he took his clothes off.
Turning, with eyes a little saddened by
the recollection of Benito's curly blackness, she saw in a corner the small
thin body, the melancholy face of Bernard Marx.
"Bernard!" She stepped up to him. "I was looking for you." Her voice rang clear above the hum of the
mounting lift. the others looked round
curiously. "I wanted to talk to you
about our New Mexico plan." Out of
the tail of her eye she could see Benito Hoover gaping with astonishment. The gape annoyed her. "Surprised I shouldn't be begging to go
with him again!" she said to herself. Then aloud, and more warmly than ever,
"I'd simply love to come with you for a week in July," she
went on. (Anyhow, she was publicly proving her unfaithfulness to Henry. Fanny ought to be pleased, even though it was
Bernard.) "That is," Lenina
gave him her most deliciously significant smile, "if you still want to
have me."
Bernard's pale face flushed. "What on earth for?" she wondered,
astonished, but at the same time touched by this strange tribute to her power.
"Hadn't we better talk about it
somewhere else?" he stammered, looking horribly uncomfortable.
"As though I'd been saying something
shocking," thought Lenina. "He
couldn't look more upset if I'd made a dirty joke - asked him who his mother
was, or something like that."
"I mean, with all these people about
...” He was choked with confusion.
Lenina's laugh was frank and wholly
unmalicious. "How funny you
are!" she said; and she quite genuinely did think him funny. "You'll give me at least a week's
warning, won't you," she went on in another tone. "I suppose we take the Blue Pacific
Rocket? Does it start from the Charing-T
Tower? Or is it from Hampstead?"
Before Bernard could answer, the lift
came to a standstill.
"Roof!" called a creaking
voice.
The liftman was a small simian creature,
dressed in the black tunic of an Epsilon-Minus Semi-Moron.
"Roof!"
He flung open the gates. The warm glory of afternoon sunlight made him
start and blink his eyes. "Oh,
roof!" he repeated in a voice of rapture.
He was as though suddenly and joyfully awakened from a dark annihilating
stupor. "Roof!"
He smiled up with a kind of doggily
expectant adoration into the faces of his passengers. Talking and laughing together, they stepped
out into the light. The liftman looked
after them.
"Roof?" he said once more,
questioningly.
Then a bell rang, and from the ceiling of
the lift a loudspeaker began, very softly and yet very imperiously, to issue
its commands.
"Go down," it said, "go
down. Floor Eighteen. Go down, go down. Floor Eighteen. Go down, go ..."
The liftman slammed the gates, touched a
button and instantly dropped back into the droning twilight of the well, the twilight
of his own habitual stupor.
It was warm and bright on the roof. The summer afternoon was drowsy with the hum
of passing helicopters; and the deeper drone of the rocket-planes hastening,
invisible, through the bright sky five or six miles overhead was like a caress
on the soft air. Bernard Marx drew a
deep breath. He looked into the sky and
round the blue horizon and finally down into Lenina's face.
"Isn't it beautiful?" His voice trembled a little.
She smiled at him with an expression of
the most sympathetic understanding.
"Simply perfect for Obstacle Golf," she answered
rapturously. "And now I must fly,
Bernard. Henry gets cross if I keep him
waiting. Let me know in good, good time
about the date." And waving her
hand, she ran away across the wide flat roof towards the hangers. Bernard stood watching the retreating twinkle
of the white stockings, the sunburnt knees vivaciously bending and unbending,
again, again, and the softer rolling of those well-fitted corduroy shorts
beneath the bottle-green jacket. his
face wore an expression of pain.
"I should say she was pretty,"
said a loud and cheery voice just behind him.
Bernard started, and looked round. The chubby red face of Benito Hoover was
beaming down at him - beaming with manifest cordiality. Benito was notoriously good-natured. People said of him that he could have got
through life without ever touching soma.
The malice and bad tempers
from which other people had to take holidays never afflicted him. Reality for Benito was always sunny.
"Pneumatic too. And how!" Then, in another tone, "But, I
say," he went on, "you do look glum!
What you need is a gramme of soma.” Diving into his right-hand
trouser-pocket, Benito produced a phial.
"One cubic centimetre cures ten gloomy ... But, I say!"
Bernard had suddenly turned and rushed
away.
Benito stared after him. "What can be the matter with the
fellow?" he wondered, and, shaking his head, decided that the story about
the alcohol having been put into the poor chap's blood-surrogate must be
true. "Touched his brain," I
suppose."
He put away the soma bottle, and
taking out a packet of sex-hormone chewing-gum, stuffed a plug into his cheek
and walked slowly away towards the hangars, ruminating.
Henry Foster had had his machine wheeled
out of its lock-up and, when Lenina arrived, was already seated in the cockpit,
waiting.
"Four minutes late," was all
his comment, as she climbed in beside him.
He started the engines and threw the helicopter screws into gear. The machine short vertically into the
air. Henry accelerated; the humming of
the propeller shrilled from hornet to wasp, from wasp to mosquito; the
speedometer showed that they were rising at the best part of two kilometres a
minute. London diminished beneath
them. The huge table-topped buildings
were no more, in a few seconds, than a bed of geometrical mushrooms sprouting
from the green of park and garden. In
the midst of them, thin-stalked, a taller, slenderer fungus, the Charing-T Tower
lifted towards the sky a disc of shining concrete.
Like the vague torsos of fabulous
athletes, huge fleshy clouds lolled on the blue air above their heads. Out of one of them suddenly dropped a small
scarlet insect, buzzing as it fell.
"There's the Red Rocket," said
Henry," just come in from New York."
Looked at his watch, "Seven minutes behind time," he added,
and shook his head. "These Atlantic
services - they're really scandalously unpunctual."
He took his foot off the
accelerator. The humming of the screws
overhead dropped an octave and a half, back through wasp and hornet to
bumble-bee, to cockchafer, to stag-beetle.
The upward rush of the machine slackened off; a moment later they were
hanging motionless in the air. Henry
pushed at a lever; there was a click.
Slowly at first, then faster and faster, till it was a circular mist
before their eyes, the propeller in front of them began to revolve. The wind of a horizontal speed whistled ever
more shrilly in the stays. Henry kept
his eye on the revolution-counter; when the needle touched the twelve-hundred
mark, he threw the helicopter screws out of gear. The machine had enough forward momentum to be
able to fly on its planes.
Lenina looked down through the window in
the floor between her feet. They were
flying over the six kilometre zone of parkland that separated Central London
from the first ring of satellite suburbs.
The green was maggoty with fore-shortened life. Forests of Centrifugal Bumble-puppy towers
gleamed between the trees. Near
Shepherd's Bush two thousand Beta-Minus mixed doubles were playing
Riemann-surface tennis. A double row of
Escalator Fives Courts lined the main road from Notting Hill to Willesden. In the Ealing stadium a Delta gymnastic
display and community sing was in progress.
"What a hideous colour khaki
is," remarked Lenina, voiced the hypnopaedic prejudices of her caste.
The buildings of the Hounslow Feely
Studio covered seven and a half hectares.
Near them a black and khaki army of labourers was busy revitrifying the
surface of the Great West Road. One of
the huge travelling crucibles was being tapped as they flew over. The molten stone poured out in a stream of
dazzling incandescence across the road; the asbestos rollers came and went; at
the tail of an insulated watering-cart the steam rose in white clouds.
At Brentford the Television Corporation's
factory was like a small town.
"They must be changing the
shift," said Lenina.
Like aphides and ants, the leaf-green
Gamma girls, the black Semi-Morons swarmed round the entrances, or stood in
queues to take their places in the monorail tram-cars. Mulberry-coloured Beta-Minuses came and went
among the crowd. The roof of the main
building was alive with the alighting and departure of helicopters.
"My word," said Lenina,
"I'm glad I'm not a Gamma."
Ten minutes later they were at Stoke
Poges and had started their first round of Obstacle Golf.
2
With
eyes for the most part downcast and, if ever they lighted on a fellow creature,
at once and furtively averted, Bernard hastened across the roof. He was like a man pursued, but pursued by
enemies he does not wish to see, lest they should seem more hostile even than
he had supposed, and he himself be made to feel guiltier and even more
helplessly alone.
"That horrible Benito
Hoover!" And yet the man had meant
well enough. Which only made it, in a
way, much worse. Those who meant well
behaved in the same way as those who meant badly. Even Lenina was making him suffer. He remembered those weeks of timid
indecision, during which he had looked and longed and despaired of ever having
the courage to ask her. Dared he face
the risk of being humiliated by a
contemptuous refusal? But if she were to
say yes, what rapture! Well, now she had
said it and he was still wretched - wretched that she should have thought it
such a perfect afternoon for Obstacle Golf, that she should have trotted away
to join Henry Foster, that she should have found him funny for not wanting to
talk of their most private affairs in public.
Wretched, in a word, because she had behaved as any healthy and virtuous
English girl ought to behave and not in
some other, abnormal, extraordinary way.
He opened the door of his lock-up and
called to a lounging couple of Delta-Minus attendants to come and push his
machine out on to the roof. The hangers
were staffed by a single Bokanovsky Group, and the men were twins, identically
small, black and hideous. Bernard gave
his orders in the sharp, rather arrogant and even offensive tone of one who
does not feel himself too secure in his superiority. To have dealings with members of the lower
castes was always, for Bernard, a most distressing experience. For whatever the cause (and the current
gossip about the alcohol in his blood-surrogate may very likely - for accidents
will happen - have been true) Bernard's physique was hardly better than the
average Gamma. He stood eight
centimetres short of the average Alpha height and was slender in
proportion. Contact with members of the
lower castes always reminded him painfully of this physical inadequacy. "I am I, and wish I wasn't"; his
self-consciousness was acute and distressing.
Each time he found himself looking on the level, instead of downward,
into a Delta's face, he felt humiliated.
Would the creature treat him with the respect due to his caste? The question haunted him. Not without reason. For Gammas, Deltas, and Epsilons had been to
some extent conditioned to associate corporeal mass with social
superiority. Indeed, a faint hypnopaedic
prejudice in favour of size was universal.
Hence the laughter of the women to whom he made proposals, the practical
joking of his equals among the men. The
mockery made him feel an outsider; and feeling an outsider he behaved like one,
which increased the prejudice against him and intensified the contempt and
hostility aroused by his physical defects.
Which in turn increased his sense of being alien and alone. A chronic fear of being slighted made him
avoid his equals, made him stand, where his inferiors were concerned,
self-consciously on his dignity. How
bitterly he envied men like Henry Foster and Benito Hoover! Men who never had to shout at an Epsilon to
get an order obeyed; men who took their position for granted; men who moved
through the caste system as a fish through the water - so utterly at home as to
be unaware either of themselves or of the beneficent and comfortable element in
which they had their being.
Slackly, it seemed to him, and with
reluctance, the twin attendants wheeled his plane out on the roof.
"Hurry up!" said Bernard
irritably. One of them glanced at
him. Was that a kind of bestial derision
that he detected in those blank grey eyes?
"Hurry up!" he shouted more loudly, and there was an ugly rasp
in his voice.
He climbed into the plane and, a minute
later, was flying southward, towards the river.
The various Bureaux of Propaganda and the
College of Emotional Engineering were housed in a single sixty-storey building
in Fleet Street. In the basement and on
the lower floors were the presses and offices of the three great London
newspapers - The Hourly Radio, an upper caste sheet, the pale-green Gamma
Gazette, and, on khaki paper and in words exclusively of one syllable, The
Delta Mirror. Then came the Bureaux of
Propaganda by Television, by Feeling Picture, and Synthetic Voice and Music
respectively - twenty-two floors of them.
Above were the research laboratories and the padded rooms in which the
Sound-Track writers and Synthetic Composers did their delicate work. The top eighteen floors were occupied by the
College of Emotional Engineering.
Bernard landed on the roof of Propaganda
House and stepped out.
"Ring down to Mr Helmholtz
Watson," he ordered the Gamma-Plus porter, "and tell him that Mr
Bernard Marx is waiting for him on the roof."
He sat down and lit a cigarette.
Helmholtz Watson was writing when the
message came down.
"Tell him I'm coming at once,"
he said and hung up the receiver. Then,
turning to his secretary, "I'll leave you to put my things away," he
went on in the same official and impersonal tone; and, ignoring her lustrous
smile, got up and walked briskly to the door.
He was a powerfully built man,
deep-chested, broad-shouldered, massive, and yet quick in his movements,
springy and agile. The round strong
pillar of his neck supported a beautifully shaped head. His hair was dark and curly, his features
strongly marked. In a forcible emphatic
way, he was handsome and looked, as his secretary was never tired of repeating,
every centimetre an Alpha-Plus. By
profession he was a lecturer at the College of Emotional Engineering
(Department of Writing) and in the intervals of his educational activities, a
working Emotional Engineer. He wrote
regularly for The Hourly Radio, composed feely scenarios, and had the
happiest knack for slogans and hypnopaedic rhymes.
"Able," was the verdict of his
superiors. "Perhaps" (and they
would shake their heads, would significantly lower their voices) "a little
too able."
Yes, a little too able; they were
right. A mental excess had produced in
Helmholtz Watson very similar to those which, in Bernard Marx, were the result
of a physical defect. Too little bone
and brawn had isolated Bernard from his fellow men, and the sense of this
apartness, being, by all the current standards, a mental excess, became in its
turn a cause of wider separation. That
which had made Helmholtz so uncomfortably aware of being himself and all alone
was too much ability. What the two men
shared was the knowledge that they were individuals. But whereas the physically defective Bernard
had suffered all his life from the consciousness of being separate, it was only
quite recently that, grown aware of his mental excess, Helmholtz Watson had
also become aware of his difference from the people who surrounded him. This Escalator-Squash champion, this
indefatigable lover (it was said that he had had six hundred and forty
different girls in under four years), this admirable committee man and best
mixer had realized quite suddenly that sport, women, communal activities were
only, so far as he was concerned, second bests.
Really, and at bottom, he was interested in something else. But in what?
In what? That was the problem
which Bernard had come to discuss with him - or rather, since it was always
Helmholtz who did all the talking, to listen to his friend discussing, once
more.
Three charming girls from the Bureau of
Propaganda by Synthetic Voice waylaid him as he stepped out of the lift.
"Oh, Helmholtz, darling, do
come and have a picnic supper with us on Exmoor." They clung round him imploringly.
He shook his head, he pushed his way
through them. "No, no."
"We're not inviting any other
man."
But Helmholtz remained unshaken even by
this delightful promise. "No," he repeated, "I'm
busy." And he held resolutely on
his course. The girls trailed after
him. It was not till he had actually
climbed into Bernard's plane and slammed the door that they gave up
pursuit. Not without reproaches.
"These women!" he said, as the
machine rose into the air. "These
women!" And he shook his head, he
frowned. "Too awful." Bernard hypocritically agreed, wishing, as he
spoke the words, that he could have as many girls as Helmholtz did, and with as
little trouble. He was seized with a
sudden urgent need to boast. "I'm
taking Lenina Crowne to New Mexico with me," he said in a tone as casual
as he could make it.
"Are you?" said Helmholtz, with
a total absence of interest. Then after
a little pause, "This last week or two," he went on, I've been
cutting all my committees and all my girls.
You can't imagine what a hullabaloo they've been making about it at the
College. Still, it's been worth it, I
think. The effects ..." He hesitated.
"Well, they're odd, they're very odd."
A physical shortcoming could produce a
kind of mental excess. The process, it
seemed, was reversible. Mental excess
could produce, for its own purposes, the voluntary blindness and deafness of
deliberate solitude, the artificial impotence of asceticism.
The rest of the short flight was
accomplished in silence. When they had
arrived and were comfortably stretched out on the pneumatic sofas in Bernard's
room, Helmholtz began again.
Speaking very slowly, "Did you ever
feel," he asked, "as though you had something inside you that was
only waiting for you to give it a chance to come out? Some sort of extra power that you aren't
using - you know, like all the water that goes down the falls instead of
through the turbines?" He looked at
Bernard questioningly.
"You mean all the emotions one might
be feeling if things were different?"
Helmholtz shook his head. "Not quite. I'm thinking of a queer feeling I sometimes
get, a feeling that I've got something important to say and the power to say it
- only I don't know what it is, and I can't make any use of the power. If there was some different way of writing
... Or else something else to write about ...” He was silent; then, "You
see," he went on at last, "I'm pretty good at inventing phrases - you
know, the sort of words that suddenly make you jump, almost as though you'd sat
on a pin, they seem so new and exciting even though they're about something
hypnopaedically obvious. But that
doesn't seem enough. It's not enough for
the phrases to be good; what you make with them ought to be good too."
"But your things are good,
Helmholtz."
"Oh, as far as they go." Helmholtz shrugged his shoulders. "But they go such a little way. They aren't important enough, somehow. I feel I could do something much more
important. Yes, and more intense, more
violent. But what? What is there more important to say? And how can one be violent about the sort of
things one's expected to write about?
Words can be like X-rays, if you use them properly - they'll go through
anything. You read and you're
pierced. That's one of the things I try
to teach my students - how to write piercingly.
But what on earth's the good of being pierced by an article about a
Community Sing, or the latest improvement in scent organs? Besides, can you make words really piercing -
you know, like the very hardest X-rays - when you're writing about that sort of
thing? Can you say something about
nothing? That's what it finally boils
down to. I try and I try ..."
"Hush!" said Bernard suddenly,
and lifted a warning finger; they listened.
"I believe there's somebody at the door," he whispered.
Helmholtz got up, tiptoed across the
room, and with a sharp quick movement flung the door wide open. There was, of course, nobody there.
"I'm sorry," said Bernard,
feeling and looking uncomfortably foolish.
"I suppose I've got things on my nerves a bit. When people are suspicious with you, you
start being suspicious with them."
He passed his hand across his eyes, he
sighed, his voice became plaintive. He
was justifying himself. "If you
knew what I'd had to put up with recently, " he said almost tearfully -
and the uprush of his self-pity was like a fountain suddenly released. "If you only knew!"
Helmholtz Watson listened with a certain
sense of discomfort. "Poor little
Bernard!" he said to himself. But
at the same time he felt rather ashamed for his friend. He wished Bernard would show a little more
pride.
Chapter V
1
By eight
o'clock the light was failing. The loudspeakers
in the tower of the Stoke Poges Club House began, in a more than human tenor,
to announce the closing of the courses.
Lenina and Henry abandoned their game and walked back towards the Club. From the grounds of the Internal and External
Secretion Trust came the lowing of those thousands of cattle which provided,
with their hormones and their milk, the raw materials for the great factory at
Farnham Royal.
An incessant buzzing of helicopters
filled the twilight. Every two and a
half minutes a bell and the screech of whistles announced the departure of one
of the light monorail trains which carried the lower-caste golfers back from
their separate course to the metropolis.
Lenina and Henry climbed into their
machine and started off. At eight hundred
feet Henry slower down the helicopter screws, and they hung for a minute or two
poised above the fading landscape. The
forest of Burnham Beeches stretched like a great pool of darkness towards the
bright shore of the western sky. Crimson
at the horizon, the last of the sunset faded, through orange, upwards into
yellow and a pale watery green.
Northwards, beyond and above the trees, the Internal and External
Secretions factory glared with a fierce electric brilliance from every window
of its twenty stories. Beneath them lay
the buildings of the Golf Club - the huge lower-caste barracks and, on the
other side of a dividing wall, the smaller houses reserved for Alpha and Beta
members. The approaches to the monorail
station were black with the ant-like pullulation of lower-caste activity. From under the glass vault a lighted train
shot out into the open. Following its
south-easterly course across the dark plain their eyes were drawn to the
majestic buildings of the Slough Crematorium.
For the safety of night-flying planes, its four tall chimneys were
floodlighted and tipped with crimson danger signals. It was a landmark.
"Why do the smoke-stacks have those
things like balconies round them?" enquired Lenina.
"Phosphorous recovery,"
exclaimed Henry telegraphically.
"On their way up the chimney the gases go through four separate
treatments. P2O5
used to go right out of circulation every time
they cremated someone. Now they recover
over ninety-eight per cent of it. More
than a kilo and a half per adult corpse.
Which makes the best part of four hundred tons of phosphorus every year
from England alone." Henry spoke
with a happy pride, rejoicing whole-heartedly in the achievement, as though it
had been his own. "Fine to think we
can go on being socially useful even after we're dead. Making plants grow."
Lenina, meanwhile, had turned her eyes
away and was looking perpendicularly downwards at the monorail station. "Fine," she agreed. "But queer that Alphas and Betas won't
make any more plants grow than those nasty little Gammas and Deltas and
Epsilons down there."
"All men are physico-chemically
equal," said Henry sententiously.
"Besides, even Epsilons perform indispensable services."
"Even an Epsilon ..." Lenina suddenly remembered an occasion when,
as a little girl at school, she had woken up in the middle of the night and
become aware, for the first time, of the whispering that had haunted all her
sleeps. She saw again the beam of
moonlight, the row of small white beds; heard once more the soft, soft voice
that said (the words were there, unforgotten, unforgettable after so many
night-long repetitions): "Everyone works for everyone else. We can't do without anyone. Even Epsilons are useful. We couldn't do without Epsilons. Everyone works for everyone else. We can't do without anyone ..." Lenina remembered her first shock of fear
and surprise; her speculations through half a wakeful hour; and then, under the
influence of those endless repetitions, the gradual soothing of her mind, the
soothing, the smoothing, the stealthy creeping of sleep ...
"I suppose Epsilons don't really
mind being Epsilons," she said aloud.
"Of course they don't. How can they?
They don't know what it's like being anything else. We'd mind, of course. But then we've been differently
conditioned. Besides, we start with a
different heredity."
"I'm glad I'm not an Epsilon,"
said Lenina, with conviction.
"And if you were an Epsilon,"
said Henry, "your conditioning would have made you no less thankful that
you weren't a Beta or an Alpha." He
put his forward propeller into gear and headed the machine towards London. Behind them, in the west, the crimson and
orange were almost faded; a dark bank of cloud had crept into the zenith. As they flew over the Crematorium, the plane
shot upwards on the column of hot air rising from the chimneys, only to fall as
suddenly when it passed into a descending chill beyond.
"What a marvellous switchback!"
Lenina laughed delightedly.
But Henry's tone was almost, for a
moment, melancholy. "Do you know
what that switchback was?" he said.
"It was some human being finally and definitely disappearing. Going up in a squirt of hot gas. It would be curious to know who it was - a
man or a woman, an Alpha or an Epsilon ...." He sighed. Then, in a resolutely cheerful voice,
"Anyhow," he concluded, "there's one thing we can be certain of;
whoever he may have been, he was happy when he was alive. Everybody's happy now."
"Yes, everybody's happy now,"
echoed Lenina. They had heard the words
repeated a hundred and fifty times every night for twelve years.
Landing on the roof of Henry's
forty-story apartment house in Westminster, they went straight down to the
dining-hall. There, in a loud and
cheerful company, they ate an excellent meal. Soma was served with the coffee. Lenina took two half-gramme tablets and Henry
three. At twenty past nine they walked
across the street to the newly opened Westminster Abbey Cabaret. It was a night almost without clouds,
moonless and starry; but of this on the whole depressing fact Lenina and Henry
were fortunately unaware. The electric
sky-signs effectively shut off the outer darkness. 'CALVIN STOPES
AND HIS SIXTEEN SEXOPHONISTS.' From the facade of the new Abbey the giant
letters invitingly glared. 'LONDON'S FINEST SCENT AND
COLOUR ORGAN. ALL THE LATEST SYNTHETIC
MUSIC.'
They entered. The air seemed hot and somehow breathless
with the scent of ambergris and sandalwood.
On the domed ceiling of the hall, the colour organ had momentarily
painted a tropical sunset. The Sixteen
Sexophonists were playing an old favourite: 'There ain't no Bottle in all the
world like that dear little Bottle of mine.'
Four hundred couples were five-stepping round the polished floor. The sexophones wailed like melodious cats
under the moon, moaned in the alto and tenor registers as thought he little
death were upon them. Rich with a wealth
of harmonics, their tremulous chorus mounted towards a climax, louder and ever
louder - until at last, with a wave of his hand, the conductor let loose the
final shattering note of ether-music and blew the sixteen merely human blowers
clean out of existence. Thunder in A
flat major. And then, in all but silence,
in all but darkness, there followed a gradual deturgescence, a diminuendo
sliding gradually, through quarter tones, down, down to a faintly whispered
dominant chord that lingered on (while the five-four rhythms still pulsed
below) charging the darkened seconds with an intense expectancy. And at last expectancy was fulfilled. There was a sudden explosive sunrise, and
simultaneously the Sixteen burst into song:
Bottle of
mine, it's you I've always wanted!
Bottle of
mine, why was I ever decanted?
Skies are blue inside of you,
The weather's always fine;
For
There
ain't no Bottle in all the world
Like that
dear little Bottle of mine.
Five-stepping with the other four hundred
round and round Westminster Abbey, Lenina and Henry were yet dancing in another
world - the warm, the richly coloured, the infinitely friendly world of soma-holiday. How kind, how good-looking, how delightfully
amusing everyone was! "Bottle of
mine, it's you I've always wanted ...” But Lenina and Henry had what they
wanted ... They were inside, here and now - safely inside with the fine
weather, the perennially blue sky. And
when, exhausted, the Sixteen had laid by their Sexophones and the Synthetic
Music apparatus was producing the very latest in slow Malthusian Blues, they
might have been twin embryos gently rocking together on the waves of a bottled
ocean of blood-surrogate.
"Good-night, dear friends. Good-night, dear friends." The loudspeakers veiled their commands in a
genial and musical politeness.
"Good-night, dear friends ..."
Obediently, with all the others, Lenina
and Henry left the building. The
depressing stars had travelled quite some way across the heavens. But though the separating screen of the
sky-signs had now to a great extent dissolved, the two young people still
retained their happy ignorance of the night.
Swallowed half an hour before closing
time, that second dose of soma had raised a quite impenetrable wall
between the actual universe and their minds.
Bottled, they crossed the street; bottled, they took the lift up to
Henry's room on the twenty-eighth floor.
And yet, bottled as she was, and in spite of that second gramme of soma,
Lenina did not forget to take all the contraceptive precautions prescribed by
the regulations. Years of intensive
hypnopaedia and, from twelve to seventeen, Malthusian drill three times a week
had made the taking of these precautions almost as automatic and inevitable as
blinking.
"Oh, and that reminds me," she
said, as she came back from the bathroom.
"Fanny Crowne wants to know where you found that lovely green
morocco-surrogate cartridge belt you gave me."
2
Alternate
Thursdays were Bernard's Solidarity Service days. After an early dinner at the
Aphroditaeum (to which Helmholtz had recently been elected under Rule Two) he
took leave of his friend and, hailing a taxi on the roof, to the man to fly to
the Fordson Community Singery. The
machine rose a couple of hundred metres, then headed eastwards, and as it
turned, there before Bernard's eyes, gigantically beautiful, was the Singery. Flood-lighted, its three hundred and twenty
metres of white Carrara-surrogate gleamed with a snowy incandescence over
Ludgate Hill; at each of the four corners of its helicopter platform an immense
T shone crimson against the night, and from the mouths of twenty-four vast
golden trumpets rumbled a solemn synthetic music.
"Damn, I'm late," Bernard said
to himself as he first caught sight of Big Henry, the Singery clock. And sure enough, as he was paying off his
cab, Big Henry sounded the hour.
"Ford," sung out an immense bass voice from all the golden
trumpets. "Ford, Ford, Ford ...”
Nine times. Bernard ran for the lift.
The great auditorium for Ford's Day
celebrations and other massed Community Sings was at the bottom of the
building. Above it, a hundred to each
floor, were the seven thousand rooms used by Solidarity Groups for their
fortnightly services. Bernard dropped
down to floor thirty-three, hurried along the corridor, stood hesitating for a
moment outside Room 3210, then, having wound himself up, opened the door and
walked in.
Thank Ford! he was not the last. Three chairs of the twelve arranged round the
circular table were still unoccupied. He
slipped into the nearest of them as inconspicuously as he could and prepared to
frown at the yet later comers whenever they should arrive.
Turning towards him, "What were you
playing this afternoon?" the girl on his left enquired. "Obstacle, or Electro-magnetic?"
Bernard looked at her. (Ford! It was Morgana Rothchild) and blushingly
had to admit that he had been playing
neither. Morgana stared at him with
astonishment. There was an awkward
silence.
Then pointedly she turned away and
addressed herself to the more sporting man on her left.
"A good beginning for a Solidarity
Service," thought Bernard miserably, and foresaw for himself yet another
failure to achieve atonement. If only he
had given himself time to look round instead of scuttling for the nearest
chair! He could have sat between Fifi
Bradlaugh and Joanna Diesel. Instead of
which he had gone and blindly planted himself next to Morgana. Morgana! Ford!
Those black eyebrows of hers - that eyebrow, rather - for they met above
the nose. Ford! And on his right was Clara Deterding. True, Clara's eyebrows didn't meet. But she was really too pneumatic. Whereas Fifi and Joanna were absolutely
right. Plump, blonde, not too large ...
And it was that great lout, Tom Kawaguchi, who now took the seat between them.
The last arrival was Sarojini Engels.
"You're late," said the
President of the Group severely.
"Don't let it happen again."
Sarojini apologized and slid into her
place between Jim Bokanovsky and Herbert Bakunin. The group was now complete, the solidarity
circle perfect and without flaw. Man,
woman, man, in a ring of endless alternation round the table. Twelve of them ready to be made one, waiting
to come together, to be fused, to lose their twelve separate identities in a
larger being.
The President stood up, made the sign of
the T and, switching on the synthetic music, let loose the soft indefatigable
beating of drums and a choir of instruments - near-wind and super-string - that
plangently repeated and repeated the brief and unescapably haunting melody of
the First Solidarity Hymn. Again, again
- and it was not the ear that heard the pulsing rhythm, it was the midriff; the
wail and clang of those recurring harmonies haunted, not the mind, but the
yearning bowels of compassion.
The President made another sign of the T
and sat down. The service had
begun. The dedicated soma tablets
were placed in the centre of the dinner table.
The loving cup of ice-cream soma was passed from hand to hand
and, with the formula, "I drink to my annihilation," twelve times
quaffed. Then to the accompaniment of
the synthetic orchestra the First Solidarity Hymn was sung.
Ford, we
are twelve; of, make us one,
Like drops within the Social River;
Oh,
make us now together run
As swiftly as the shining Flivver.
Twelve yearning stanzas. And then the loving cup was passed a second
time. "I drink to the Great
Being" was now the formula. All
drank. Tirelessly the music played. The drums beat. The crying and clashing of the harmonies were
an obsession in the melted bowels. The
Second Solidarity Hymn was sung.
Come, Greater
Being, Social Friend,
Annihilating Twelve-in-One!
We long to
die, for when we end,
Our larger life has but begun.
Again
twelve stanzas. By the time the soma had
begun to work. Eyes shone, cheeks were flushed,
the inner light of universal benevolence broke out on every face in happy,
friendly smiles. Even Bernard felt
himself a little melted. When Morgana
Rothchild turned and beamed at him, he did his best to beam back. But the eyebrow - that black two-in-one
-alas, it was still there; he couldn't ignore it, couldn't, however hard he
tried. The melting hadn't gone far
enough. Perhaps if he had been sitting
between Fifi and Joanna ... For the third time the loving cup went round. "I drink to the Imminence of His
Coming," said Morgana Rothchild, whose turn it happened to be to initiate
the circular rite. Her tone was loud,
exultant. She drank and passed the cup
to Bernard. "I drink to the
Imminence of His Coming," he repeated, with a sincere attempt to feel that
the Coming was imminent; but the eyebrow continued to haunt him, and the
Coming, so far as he was concerned, was horribly remote. He drank and handed the cup to Clara
Deterding. "It'll be a failure
again," he said to himself. "I
know it will." But he went on doing
his best to beam.
The loving cup had made its circuit. Lifting his hand, the President gave a
signal; the chorus broke out into the Third Solidarity Hymn.
Feel
how the Greater Being comes!
Rejoice and, in rejoicing, die!
Melt in
the music of the drums!
For I am you and you are I.
As verse succeeded verse the voices
thrilled with an ever intenser excitement.
The sense of the Coming's imminence was like an electric tension in the
air. The President switched off the
music and, with the final note of the final stanza, there was absolute silence
- the silence of stretched expectancy, quivering and creeping with a galvanic
life. The President reached out his
hand; and suddenly a Voice, a deep strong Voice, more musical than any merely
human voice, richer, warmer, more vibrant with love and yearning and
compassion, a wonderful, mysterious, supernatural Voice spoke from above their
heads. Very slowly, "Oh, Ford, Ford,
Ford," it said diminishingly and on a descending scale. A sensation of warmth radiated thrillingly
out from the solar plexus to every extremity of the bodies of those who
listened; tears came into their eyes; their hearts, their bowels seemed to move
within them, as though with an independent life. "Ford!" they were melting,
"Ford!" dissolved, dissolved.
Then, in another tone, suddenly, startlingly. "Listen!" trumpeted the Voice. "Listen!" They listened. After a pause, sunk to a whisper, but a
whisper, somehow, more penetrating than the loudest cry. "The feet of the Greater Being," it
went on, and repeated the words: "The feet of the Greater Being are on the
stairs." And once more there was
silence, and the expectancy, momentarily relaxed, was stretched again, tauter,
tauter, almost to the tearing point. The
feet of the Greater Being - oh, they heard them, they heard them, coming softly
down the stairs, coming nearer and nearer down the invisible stairs. The feet of the Greater Being. And suddenly the tearing point was
reached. Her eyes staring, her lips
parted, Morgana Rothchild sprang to her feet.
"I hear him," she cried. "I hear him."
"He's coming," shouted Sarojini
Engels.
"Yes, he's coming, I hear
him." Fifi Bradlaugh and Tom
Kawaguchi rose simultaneously to their feet.
"Oh, oh, oh!" Joanna
inarticulately testified.
"He's coming!" yelled Jim
Bokanovsky.
The President leaned forward and, with a
touch, released a delirium of symbols and blown brass, a fever of tom-tomming.
"Oh, he's coming!" screamed
Clara Deterding. "Aie!" and it
was as though she were having her throat cut.
Feeling that it was time for him to do
something, Bernard also jumped up and shouted: "I hear him; he's
coming." But it wasn't true. He heard nothing and, for him, nobody was
coming. Nobody - in spite of the music,
in spite of the mounting excitement. But
he waved his arms, he shouted with the best of them; and when the others began
to jig and stamp and shuffle, he also jigged and shuffled.
Round they went, a circular procession of
dancers, each with hands on the hips of the dancer preceding, round and round,
stamping to the rhythm of the music with their feet, beating it, beating it out
with hands on the buttocks in front; twelve pairs of hands beating as one; as
one, twelve buttocks slabbily resounding.
Twelve as one, twelve as one.
"I hear him, I hear him coming." The music quickened; faster beat the feet,
faster, faster fell the rhythmic hands.
And all at once a great synthetic bass boomed out the words which
announced the approaching atonement and final consummation of solidarity, the
coming of the Twelve-in-One, the incarnation of the Greater Being. "Orgy-porgy," it sang, while the
tom-toms continued to beat their feverish tattoo:
Orgy-porgy,
Ford and fun,
Kiss the
girls and make them One.
Boys at
one with girls at peace;
Orgy-porgy
gives release.
"Orgy-porgy," the dancers
caught up the liturgical refrain, "Orgy-porgy, Ford and fun, kiss the
girls ..." And as they sang, the
lights began slowly to fade - to fade and at the same time to grow warmer,
richer, redder, until at last they were dancing in the crimson twilight of an
Embryo Store. "Orgy-porgy ...” In
their blood-coloured and foetal darkness the dancers continued for a while to
circulate, to beat and beat out the indefatigable rhythm. "Orgy-porgy ...” Then the circle
wavered, broke, fell in partial disintegration on the ring of couches which
surrounded - circle enclosing circle - the table and its planetary chairs. "Orgy-porgy ...” Tenderly the deep Voice
crooned and cooed; in the red twilight it was as though some enormous negro
dove were hovering benevolently over the now prone or supine dancers.
They were standing on the roof; Big Henry
had just sung eleven. The night was calm
and warm.
"Wasn't it wonderful?" said
Fifi Bradlaugh. "Wasn't it simply
wonderful?" She looked at Bernard
with an expression of rapture, but of rapture in which there was no trace of
agitation or excitement - for to be excited is still to be unsatisfied. Hers was the calm ecstasy of achieved consummation,
the peace, not of mere vacant satiety and nothingness, but of balanced life, of
energies at rest and in equilibrium. A
rich and living peace. For the
Solidarity Service had given as well as taken, drawn off only to
replenish. She was full, she was made
perfect, she was still more than merely herself. "Didn't you think it was
wonderful?" she insisted, looking into Bernard's face with those
supernaturally shining eyes.
"Yes, I thought it was
wonderful," he lied and looked away; the sight of her transfigured face
was at once an accusation and an ironical reminder of his own
separateness. He was as miserably
isolated now as he had been when the service began - more isolated by reason of
his unreplenished emptiness, his dead satiety.
Separate and unatoned, while the others were being fused into the
Greater Being; alone even in Morgana's embrace - much more alone, indeed, more
hopelessly himself than he had ever been in his life before. He had emerged from that crimson twilight
into the common electric glare with a self-consciousness intensified to the
pitch of agony. He was utterly
miserable, and perhaps (her shining eyes accused him), perhaps it was his own
fault. "Quite wonderful," he
repeated; but the only thing he could think of was Morgana's eyebrow.
Chapter VI
1
Odd,
odd, odd, was Lenina's verdict on Bernard Marx. So odd, indeed, that in the course of the
succeeding weeks she had wondered more than once whether she shouldn't change
her mind about the New Mexico holiday, and go instead to the North Pole with
Benito Hoover. The trouble was that she
knew the North Pole, had been there with George Edzel only last summer, and
what was more, found it pretty grim.
Nothing to do, and the hotel too hopelessly old-fashioned - no
television laid on in the bedrooms, no scent organ, only the most putrid
synthetic music, and not more than twenty-five Escalator-Squash Courts for over
two hundred guests. Added to which, she
had only been to America once before.
And even then, how inadequately!
A cheap week-end in New York - had it been with Jean-Jacques Habibullah
or Bokanovsky Jones? She couldn't
remember. Anyhow, it was of absolutely
no importance. The prospect of flying
West again, and for a whole week, was very inviting. Moreover, for at least three days of that
week they would be in the Savage Reservation.
Not more than half a dozen people in the whole Centre had ever been
inside a Savage Reservation. As an Alpha-Plus
psychologist, Bernard was one of the few men she knew entitled to a permit. For Lenina, the opportunity was unique. And yet, so unique also was Bernard's
oddness, that she had hesitated to take it, had actually thought of risking the
Pole again with funny old Benito. At
least Benito was normal. Whereas Bernard
...
"Alcohol in his
blood-surrogate," was Fanny's explanation of every eccentricity. But Henry, with whom, one evening when they
were in bed together, Lenina had rather anxiously discussed her new lover,
Henry had compared poor Bernard to a rhinoceros.
"You can't teach a rhinoceros
tricks," he had explained in his brief and vigorous style. "Some men are almost rhinoceroses; they
don't respond properly to conditioning.
Poor devils! Bernard's one of
them. Luckily for him, he's pretty good
at his job. Otherwise the Director would
never have kept him. However," he
added consolingly, "I think he's pretty harmless."
Pretty harmless, perhaps; but also pretty
disquieting. That mania, to start with,
for doing things in private. Which meant,
in practice, not doing anything at all.
For what was there that one could do in private. (Apart, of course, from going to bed: but one
couldn't do that all the time.) Yes,
what was there? Precious
little. The first afternoon they went
out together was particularly fine.
Lenina had suggested a swim at the Torquay Country Club followed by
dinner at the Oxford Union. But Bernard
thought there would be too much of a crowd.
Then what about a round of Electro-magnetic Golf at St Andrews? But again, no: Bernard considered that
Electro-magnetic Golf was a waste of time.
"Then what's time for?" asked
Lenina in some astonishment.
Apparently, for going walks in the Lake
District; for that was what he now proposed.
Land on top of Skiddaw and walk for a couple of hours in the
heather. "Alone with you,
Lenina."
"But, Bernard, we shall be alone all
night."
Bernard blushed and looked away. "I meant, alone for talking," he
mumbled.
"Talking? But what about?" Walking and talking - that seemed a very odd
way of spending an afternoon.
In the end she persuaded him, much
against his will, to fly over to Amsterdam to see the Semi-Demi-Finals of the
Women's Heavyweight Wrestling Championship.
"In a crowd," he grumbled. "As usual." He remained obstinately gloomy the whole
afternoon; wouldn't talk to Lenina's friends (of whom they met dozens in the
ice-cream soma bar between the wrestling bouts); and in spite of his
misery absolutely refused to take the half-gramme raspberry sundae which she
pressed upon him. "I'd rather be
myself," he said. "Myself and
nasty. Not somebody else, however
jolly."
"A gramme in time saves nine,"
said Lenina, producing a bright treasure of sleep-taught wisdom.
Bernard pushed away the proffered glass
impatiently.
"Now don't lose your temper,"
she said. "Remember, one cubic
centimetre cures ten gloomy sentiments."
"Oh, for Ford's sake, be
quiet!" he shouted.
Lenina shrugged her shoulders. "A gramme is always better than a
damn," she concluded with dignity, and drank the sundae herself.
On their way back across the Channel,
Bernard insisted on stopping his propeller and hovering on his helicopter
screws within a hundred feet of the waves.
The weather had taken a change for the worse; a south-westerly wind had
sprung up, the sky was cloudy.
"Look," he commanded.
"But it's horrible," said
Lenina, shrinking back from the window.
She was appalled by the rushing emptiness of the night, by the black
foam-flecked water heaving beneath them, by the pale face of the moon, so haggard
and distracted among the hastening clouds.
"Let's turn on the radio.
Quick!" She reached for the
dialling knob on the dashboard and turned it at random.
“... skies are blue inside of you,"
sang sixteen tremoloing falsettos, "the weather's always ..."
Then a hiccough and silence. Bernard had switched off the current.
"I want to look at the sea in
peace," he said. "One can't
even look with that beastly noise going on."
"But it's lovely. And I don't want to look."
"But I do," he insisted. "It makes me feel as though ..." he
hesitated, searching for words with which to express himself, "as though I
were more me, if you see what I mean.
More on my own, not so completely a part of something else. Not just a cell in the social body. Doesn't it make you feel like that,
Lenina?"
But Lenina was crying. "It's horrible, it's horrible," she
kept repeating. "And how can you
talk like that about not wanting to be a part of the social body? After all, everyone works for everyone
else. We can't do without anyone. Even Epsilons ..."
"Yes, I know," said Bernard
derisively. "'Even Epsilons are
useful'! So am I. And I damned well wish I weren't!"
Lenina was shocked by his blasphemy. "Bernard!" she protested in a voice
of amazed distress. "How can you?"
In a different key, "How can
I?" he repeated meditatively. "No, the real problem is: How is it
that I can't, or rather - because, after all, I know quite well why I can't -
what would it be like if I could, if I were free - not enslaved by my conditioning."
"But, Bernard, you're saying the
most awful things."
"Don't you wish you were free,
Lenina?"
"I don't know what you mean. I am free.
Free to have the most wonderful time.
Everybody's happy nowadays."
He laughed, "Yes, 'Everybody's happy
nowadays.' We begin giving the children
that at five. But wouldn't you like to
be free to be happy in some other way, Lenina?
In your own way, for example; not in everybody else's way."
"I don't know what you mean,"
she repeated. Then, turning to him,
"Oh, do let's get back, Bernard," she besought; "I do so hate it
here."
"Don't you like being with me?"
"But of course, Bernard! It's this horrible place."
"I thought we'd be more ... more together
here - with nothing but the sea and moon.
More together than in that crowd, or even in my rooms. Don't you understand that?"
"I don't understand anything,"
she said with decision, determined to preserve her incomprehension intact. "Nothing. Least of all," she continued in another tone,
"why you don't take soma when you have these dreadful ideas of
yours. You'd forget all about them. And instead of feeling miserable, you'd be
jolly. So jolly," she
repeated and smiled, for all the puzzled anxiety in her eyes, with what was
meant to be an inviting and voluptuous cajolery.
He looked at her in silence, his face
unresponsive and very grave - looked at her intently. After a few seconds Lenina's eyes flinched
away; she uttered a nervous little laugh, tried to think of something to say
and couldn't. The silence prolonged
itself.
When Bernard spoke at last, it was in a
small tired voice. "All right,
then," he said, "we'll go back."
And stepping hard on the accelerator, he sent the machine rocketing up
into the sky. At four thousand he
started his propeller. They flew in
silence for a minute or two. Then,
suddenly, Bernard began to laugh. Rather
oddly, Lenina thought; but still, it was laughter.
"Feeling better?" she ventured
to ask.
For answer, he lifted one hand from the
controls and, slipping his arm round her, began to fondle her breasts.
"Thank Ford," she said to
herself, "he's all right again."
Half an hour later they were back in his
rooms. Bernard swallowed four tablets of
soma at a gulp, turned on the radio and television and began to undress.
"Well," Lenina inquired, with
significant archness when they met next afternoon on the roof, "did you
think it was fun yesterday?"
Bernard nodded. They climbed into the plane. A little jolt, and they were off.
"Everyone says I'm awfully
pneumatic," said Lenina reflectively, patting her own legs.
"Awfully." But there was an expression of pain in
Bernard's eyes. "Like meat,"
he was thinking.
She looked up with a certain
anxiety. "But you don't think I'm too
plump, do you?"
He shook his head. Like so much meat.
"You think I'm all right." Another nod.
"In every way?"
"Perfect," he said aloud. And inwardly, "She thinks of herself
that way. She doesn't mind being
meat."
Lenina smiled triumphantly. But her satisfaction was premature.
"All the same," he went on,
after a little pause, "I still rather wish it had all ended
differently."
"Differently?" Were there other endings?
"I didn't want it to end with our
going to bed," he specified.
Lenina was astonished.
"Not at once, not the first
day."
"But then what ...?"
He began to talk a lot of
incomprehensible and dangerous nonsense.
Lenina did her best to stop the ears of her mind; but every now and then
a phrase would insist on becoming audible.
"... to try the effect of arresting my impulses," she heard
him say. The words seemed to touch a
spring in her mind.
"Never put off till tomorrow the fun
you can have today," she said gravely.
"Two hundred repetitions, twice a
week from fourteen to sixteen and a half," was all his comment. The mad bad talk rambled on. "I want to know what passion is,"
she heard him saying. "I want to
feel something strongly."
"When the individual feels, the
community reels," Lenina pronounced.
"Well, why shouldn't it reel a
bit?"
"Bernard!"
But Bernard remained unabashed.
"Adults intellectually and during
working hours," he went on.
"Infants where feeling and desire are concerned."
"Our Ford loved infants."
Ignoring the interruption, "It
suddenly struck me the other day," continued Bernard, "that it might
be possible to be an adult all the time."
"I don't understand." Lenina's tone was firm.
"I know you don't. And that's why we went to bed together
yesterday - like infants - instead of being adults and waiting."
"But it was fun," Lenina
insisted. "Wasn't it?"
"Oh, the greatest fun," he
answered, but in a voice so mournful, with an expression so profoundly
miserable, that Lenina felt all her triumph suddenly evaporate. Perhaps he had found her too plump, after
all.
"I told you so," was all that
Fanny said, when Lenina came and made her confidences. "It's the alcohol they put in his
surrogate."
"All the same," Lenina
insisted, "I do like him. He has
such awfully nice hands. And the way he
moves his shoulders - that's very attractive." She sighed.
"But I wish he weren't so odd."
2
Halting
for a moment outside the door of the Director's room, Bernard drew a deep
breath and squared his shoulders, bracing himself to meet the dislike and
disapproval which he was certain of finding within. He knocked and entered.
"A permit for you to initial,
Director," he said as airily as possible, and laid the paper on the
writing-table.
The Director glanced at him sourly. But the stamp of the World Controller's Office
was at the head of the paper and the signature of Mustapha Mond, bold and
black, across the bottom. Everything was
perfectly in order. The Director had no
choice. He pencilled his initials - two
small pale letters abject at the feet of Mustapha Mond - and was about to
return the paper without a word of comment or genial Ford-speed, when his eye
was caught by something written in the body of the permit.
"For the New Mexican
Reservation?" he said, and his tone, the face he lifted to Bernard,
expressed a kind of agitated astonishment.
Surprised by his surprise, Bernard
nodded. There was a silence.
The Director leaned back in his chair,
frowning. "How long ago was
it?" he said, speaking more to himself than to Bernard. "Twenty years, I suppose. Nearer twenty-five. I must have been your age ...” He sighed and
shook his head.
Bernard felt extremely
uncomfortable. A man so conventional, so
scrupulously correct as the Director - and to commit so gross a solecism! It made him want to hide his face, to run out
of the room. Not that he himself saw
anything intrinsically objectionable in people talking about the remote past;
that was one of those hypnopaedic prejudices he had (so he imagined) completely
got rid of. What made him feel shy was
the knowledge that the Director disapproved - disapproved and yet had been
betrayed into doing the forbidden thing.
Under what inward compulsion?
Through his discomfort Bernard eagerly listened.
"I had the same idea as you,"
the Director was saying. "Wanted to
have a look at the savages. Got a permit
for New Mexico and went there for my summer holiday. With the girl I was having at the
moment. She was a Beta-Minus, and I
think" (he shut his eyes), "I think she had yellow hair. Anyhow, she was pneumatic, particularly
pneumatic; I remember that. Well, we
went there, and we looked at the savages, and we rode about on horses and all
that. And then - it was almost the last
day of my leave - then ... well, she got lost.
We'd gone riding up one of those revolting mountains, and it was
horribly hot and oppressive, and after lunch we went to sleep. Or at least I did. She must have gone for a walk, alone. At any rate, when I woke up, she wasn't
there. And the most frightful
thunderstorm I've ever seen was just bursting on us. And it poured and roared and flashed; and the
horses broke loose and ran away; and I fell down, trying to catch them, and
hurt my knee, so that I could hardly walk.
Still, I searched and I shouted and I searched. But there was no sign of her. Then I thought she must have gone back to the
rest-house by herself. So I crawled down
into the valley by the way we had come.
My knee was agonizingly painful, and I'd lost my soma. It took me hours. I didn't get back to the rest-house till after
midnight. And she wasn't there; she
wasn't there," the Director repeated.
There was a silence.
"Well," he resumed at last, "the next day there was a
search. But we couldn't find her. She must have fallen into a gully somewhere;
or been eaten by a mountain lion. Ford
knows. Anyhow it was horrible. It upset me very much at the time. More than it ought to have done, I dare
say. Because, after all, it's the sort
of accident that might have happened to anyone; and, of course, the social body
persists although the component cells may change." But this sleep-taught consolation did not
seem to be very effective. Shaking his
head, "I actually dream about it sometimes," the Director went on in
a low voice. "Dream of being woken
up by that peal of thunder and finding her gone; dream of searching and
searching for her under the trees."
He lapsed into the silence of reminiscence.
"You must have had a terrible
shock," said Bernard, almost enviously.
At the sound of his voice the Director
started into a guilty realization of where he was; shot a glance at Bernard,
and, averting his eyes, blushed darkly; looked at him again with sudden
suspicion and, angrily on his dignity, "Don't imagine," he said,
"that I'd had any indecorous relation with the girl. Nothing emotional, nothing long-drawn. It was all perfectly healthy and
normal." He handed Bernard the
permit. "I really don't know why I
bored you with this trivial anecdote."
Furious with himself for having given away a discreditable secret, he
vented his rage on Bernard. The look in
his eyes was now frankly malignant.
"And I should like to take this opportunity, Mr Marx," he went
on, "of saying that I'm not at all pleased with the reports I receive of
your behaviour outside working hours.
You may say that this is not my business. But it is.
I have the good name of the Centre to think of. My workers must be above suspicion,
particularly those of the highest castes.
Alphas are so conditioned that they do not have to be infantile
in their emotional behaviour. But that
is all the more reason for their making a special effort to conform. It is their duty to be infantile, even
against their inclination. And so, Mr
Marx, I give you fair warning." The
Director's voice vibrated with an indignation that had now become wholly
righteous and impersonal - was the expression of the disapproval of Society
itself. "If ever I hear again of
any lapse from a proper standard of infantile decorum, I shall ask for your
transference to a Sub-Centre - preferably to Iceland. Good morning." And swivelling round in his chair, he picked
up his pen and began to write.
"That'll teach him," he said to
himself. But he was mistaken. For Bernard left the room with a swagger,
exulting, as he banged the door behind him, in the thought that he stood alone,
embattled against the order of things; elated by the intoxicating consciousness
of his individual significance and importance.
Even the thought of persecution left him undismayed, was rather tonic
than depressing. He felt strong enough
to meet and overcome affliction, strong enough to face even Iceland. And this confidence was the greater for his
not for a moment really believing that he would be called upon to face anything
at all. People simply weren't
transferred for things like that. Iceland was just a threat. A most stimulating and life-giving
threat. Walking along the corridor, he
actually whistled.
Heroic was the account he gave that
evening of his interview with the D.H.C.
"Whereupon," it concluded, "I simply told him to go to
the Bottomless Past and marched out of the room. And that was that." He looked at Helmholtz Watson expectantly,
awaiting his due reward of sympathy, encouragement, admiration. But no word came. Helmholtz sat silent, staring at the floor.
He liked Bernard; he was grateful to him
for being the only man of his acquaintance with whom he could talk about the
subjects he felt to be important.
Nevertheless, there were things in Bernard which he hated. This boasting, for example. And the outbursts of an abject self-pity with
which it alternated. And his deplorable
habit of being bold after the event, and full, in absence, of the most
extraordinary presence of mind. He hated
these things - just because he liked Bernard.
The seconds passed. Helmholtz
continued to stare at the floor. And
suddenly Bernard blushed and turned away.
3
The
journey was quite uneventful. The Blue
Pacific Rocket was two and a half minutes early at New Orleans, lost four
minutes in a tornado over Texas, but flew into a favourable air current at
Longitude 95 West, and was able to land at Santa Fé less than forty seconds
behind schedule time.
"Forty seconds on a six and a half
hour flight. Not so bad," Lenina
conceded.
They slept that night at Santa Fé. The hotel was excellent - incomparably
better, for example, than that horrible Aurora Bora Palace in which Lenina had
suffered so much the previous summer.
Liquid air, television, vibro-vacuum massage, radio, boiling caffeine
solution, hot contraceptives, and eight different kinds of scent were laid on
in every bedroom. The synthetic music
plant was working as they entered the hall and left nothing to be desired. A notice in the lift announced that there
were sixty Escalator-Squash-Raquet Courts in the hotel, and that Obstacle and
Electro-magnetic Golf could both be played in the park.
"But it sounds simply too
lovely," cried Lenina. "I
almost wish we could stay here. Sixty
Escalator-Squash-Courts ..."
"There won't be any in the
Reservation," Bernard warned her.
"And no scent, no television, no hot water, even. If you feel you can't stand it, stay here
till I come back."
Lenina was quite offended. "Of course I can stand it. I only said it was lovely here because ...
well, because progress is lovely, isn't it?"
"Five hundred repetitions once a
week from thirteen to seventeen," said Bernard wearily, as though to
himself.
"What did you say?"
"I said that progress was
lovely. That's why you mustn't come to
the Reservation unless you really want to."
"But I do want to."
"Very well, then," said
Bernard; and it was almost a threat.
Their permit required the signature of
the Warden of the Reservation, at whose office next morning they duly presented
themselves. An Epsilon-Plus Negro porter
took in Bernard's card, and they were admitted almost immediately.
The Warden was a blond and brachycephalic
Alpha-Minus, short, red, moon-faced, and broad-shouldered, with a loud booming
voice, very well adapted to the utterance of hypnopaedic wisdom. He was a mine of irrelevant information and
unasked-for good advice. Once started, he went on and on - boomingly.
“... five hundred and sixty thousand
square kilometres, divided into four distinct Sub-Reservations, each surrounded
by a high-tension wire fence."
At this moment, and for no apparent
reason, Bernard suddenly remembered that he had left the eau-de-Cologne tap in
his bathroom wide open and running.
“... supplied with current from the Grand
Canyon hydro-electric station."
"Cost me a fortune by the time I get
back." With his mind's eye, Bernard
saw the needle on the scent meter creeping round and round, ant-like,
indefatigably. "Quickly telephone
to Helmholtz Watson."
“... upwards of five thousand kilometres
of fencing at sixty thousand volts."
"You don't say so," said Lenina
politely, not knowing in the least what the Warden had said, but taking her cue
from his dramatic pause. When the Warden
started booming, she had inconspicuously swallowed half a gramme of soma,
with the result that she could now sit, serenely not listening, thinking of
nothing at all, but with her large blue eyes fixed on the Warden's face in an
expression of rapt attention.
"To touch the fence is instant
death," pronounced the Warden solemnly.
"There is no escape from a Savage Reservation."
The word 'escape' was suggestive. "Perhaps," said Bernard, half
rising, "we ought to think of going."
The little black needle was scurrying, an insect, nibbling through time,
eating into his money.
"No escape," repeated the Warden,
waving him back into his chair; and as the permit was not yet countersigned,
Bernard had no choice but to obey.
"Those who was born in the Reservation - and remember, my dear
young lady," he added, leering obscenely at Lenina, and speaking in an
improper whisper, "remember that, in the Reservation, children still are born,
yes, actually born, revolting as that may seem .." (He hoped that this
reference to a shameful subject would make Lenina blush; but she only smiled
with simulated intelligence and said, "You don't say so!" Disappointed, the Warden began again.) "Those, I repeat, who are born in the
Reservation are destined to die there."
Destined to die ... A decilitre of
eau-de-Cologne every minute. Six litres
an hour. "Perhaps," Bernard
tried again, we ought ..."
Leaning forward, the Warden tapped the
table with his forefinger. "You ask
me how many people live in the Reservation.
And I reply, - triumphantly - "I reply that we do not know. We can only guess."
"You don't say so."
"My dear young lady, I do say
so."
Six times twenty-four - no, it would be
nearer six times thirty-six. Bernard was
pale and trembling with impatience. But
inexorably the booming continued.
" ... about six thousand Indians and
half-breeds ... absolute savages ... our inspectors occasionally visit ...
otherwise, no communication whatever with the civilized world ... still
preserve their repulsive habits and customs ... marriage, if you know what that
is, my dear young lady; families ... no conditioning ... monstrous
superstitions ... Christianity and totemism and ancestor worship ... extinct
languages, such as Zuńi and Spanish and Athapascan ... pumas, porcupines and
other ferocious animals ... infectious diseases ... priests ... venomous
lizards ..."
"You don't say so."
They got away at last. Bernard dashed to the telephone. Quick, quick; but it took him nearly three
minutes to get on to Helmholtz Watson.
"We might be among the savages already," he complained. "Damned incompetence!"
"Have a gramme," suggested
Lenina.
He refused, preferring his anger. And at last, thank Ford, he was through and,
yes, it was Helmholtz; Helmholtz, to whom he explained what had happened, and
who promised to go round at once, at once, and turn off the tap, yet, at once,
but took this opportunity to tell him what the D.H.C. had said, in public,
yesterday evening ...
"What? He's looking out for someone to take my
place?" Bernard's voice was
agonized. "So it's actually
decided? Did he mention Iceland? You say he did? Ford!
Iceland ...” He hung up the receiver and turned back to Lenina. His face was pale, his expression utterly
dejected.
"What's the matter?" she asked.
"The matter?" He dropped heavily into a chair. "I'm going to be sent to Iceland."
Often in the past he had wondered what it
would be like to be subjected (soma-less and with nothing but his own
inward resources to rely on) to some great trial, some pain, some persecution;
he had even longed for affliction. As
recently as a week ago, in the Director's office, he had imagined himself
courageously resisting, stoically accepting suffering without a word. The Director's threats had actually elated
him, made him feel larger than life. But
that, as he now realized, was because he had not taken the threats quite seriously;
he had not believed that, when it came to the point, the D.H.C. would ever do
anything. Now that it looked as though
the threats were really to be fulfilled, Bernard was appalled. Of that imagined stoicism, that theoretical
courage, not a trace was left.
He raged against himself - what a fool!
- against the Director - how unfair not
to give him that other chance, that other chance which, he now had no doubt at
all, he had always intended to take. And
Iceland, Iceland ...
Lenina shook her head. "Was and will make me ill," she
quoted, "I take a gramme and only am."
In the end she persuaded him to swallow
four tablets of soma. Five
minutes later roots and fruits were abolished; the flower of the present rosily
blossomed. A message from the porter
announced that, at the Warden's orders, a Reservation guard had come round with
a plane and was waiting on the roof of the hotel. They went up at once. An octoroon in Gamma-green uniform saluted
and proceeded to recite the morning's programme.
A bird's-eye view of ten or a dozen of
the principal pueblos, then a landing for lunch in the valley of Malpais. The rest-house was comfortable there, and up
at the pueblo the savages would probably be celebrating their summer
festival. It would be the best place to
spend the night.
They took their seats in the plane and
set off. Ten minutes later they were
crossing the frontier that separated civilization from savagery. Uphill and down, across the deserts of salt
or sand, through forests, into the violet depth of canyons, over crag and peak
and table-topped mesa, the fence marched on and on, irresistibly the straight
line, the geometrical symbol of triumphant human progress. And at its foot, here and there, a mosaic of
white bones, a still unrotted carcass dark on the tawny ground marked the place
where deer or steer, puma or porcupine or coyote, or the greedy turkey buzzards
drawn down by the whiff of carrion and fulminated as though by a poetic
justice, had come too close to the destroying wires.
"They never learn," said the
green-uniformed pilot, pointing down at the skeletons on the ground below
them. "And they never will
learn," he added and laughed, as though he had somehow scored a personal
triumph over the electrocuted animals.
Bernard also laughed; after two grammes
of soma the joke seemed, for some reason, good. Laughed and then, almost immediately, dropped
off to sleep and, sleeping, was carried over Taos and Tesuque; over Nambe and
Picuris and Pojoaque, over Sia and Cochiti, over Laguna and Acoma and the
Enchanted Mesa, over Zuńi and Cibola and Ojo Caliente, and woke at last to find
the machine standing on the ground, Lenina carrying the suitcases into a small
square house, and the Gamma-green octoroon talking incomprehensibly with a young
Indian.
"Malpais," explained the pilot,
as Bernard stepped out. "This is
the rest-house. And there's a dance this
afternoon at the pueblo. He'll take you
there." He pointed to the sullen
young savage. "Funny, I
expect." He grinned. "Everything they do is funny." And with that he climbed into the plane and
started up the engines. "Back
tomorrow. And remember," he added
reassuringly to Lenina, "they're perfectly tame; savages won't do you any
harm. They've got enough experience of
gas bombs to know that they mustn't play any tricks." Still laughing, he threw the helicopter
screws into gear, accelerated, and was gone.
Chapter VII
The mesa
was like a ship becalmed in a strait of lion-coloured dust. The channel wound between precipitous banks, and
slanting from one wall to the other across the valley ran a streak of green -
the river and its fields. On the prow of
that stone ship in the centre of the strait, and seemingly a part of it, a
shaped and geometrical outcrop of the naked rock, stood the pueblo of
Malpais. Block above block, each storey
smaller than the one below, the tall houses rose like stepped and amputated
pyramids into the blue sky. At their
feet lay a straggle of low buildings, a criss-cross of walls; and on three
sides the precipices fell sheer into the plain.
A few columns of smoke mounted perpendicularly into the windless air and
were lost.
"Queer,” said Lenina, "very
queer." It was her ordinary word of
condemnation. "I don't like
it. And I don't like that
man." She pointed to the Indian
guide who had been appointed to take them to the pueblo. Her feeling was evidently reciprocated; the
very back of the man, as he walked along before them, was hostile, sullenly
contemptuous.
"Besides," she lowered her
voice," he smells.
Bernard did not attempt to deny it. They walked on.
Suddenly it was though the whole air had
come alive and were pulsing, pulsing with the indefatigable movement of
blood. Up there, in Malpais, the drums
were being beaten. Their feet fell in
with the rhythm of that mysterious heart; they quickened their pace. Their path led them to the foot of the
precipice. The sides of the great mesa
ship towered over them, three hundred feet to the gunwale.
"I wish we could have brought the
plane," said Lenina, looking up resentfully at the blank impending rock
face. "I hate walking. And you feel so small when you're on the
ground at the bottom of a hill."
They walked along for some way in the
shadow of the mesa, rounded a projection, and there, in a water-worn ravine,
was the way up the companion ladder.
They climbed. It was a very steep
path that zigzagged from side to side of the gully. Sometimes the pulsing of the drums was all
but inaudible, at others they seemed to be beating just round the corner.
When they were half-way up, an eagle flew
past so close to them that the wind of his wings blew chill on their
faces. In a crevice of the rock lay a
pile of bones. It was all oppressively
queer, and the Indian smelt stronger and stronger. They emerged at last from the ravine into the
full sunlight. The top of the mesa was a
flat deck of stone.
"Like the Charing-T Tower," was
Lenina's comment. But she was not
allowed to enjoy her discovery of this reassuring resemblance for long. A padding of soft feet made them turn
round. Naked from throat to navel, their
dark-brown bodies painted with white lines ("like asphalt tennis
courts," Lenina was later to explain), their faces inhuman with daubings
of scarlet, black and ochre, two Indians came running along the path. Their black hair was braided with fox fur and
red flannel. Cloaks of turkey feathers
fluttered from their shoulders; huge feather diadems exploded gaudily round their
heads. With every step they took came
the clink and rattle of their silver bracelets, their heavy necklaces of bone
and turquoise beads. They came on
without a word, running quietly in their deerskin moccasins. One of them was holding a feather brush; the
other carried, in either hand, what looked at a distance like three or four
pieces of thick rope. One of the ropes
writhed uneasily, and suddenly Lenina saw that they were snakes.
The men came nearer and nearer; their
dark eyes looked at her, but without giving any sign of recognition, any
smallest sign that they had seen her or were aware of her existence. The writhing snake hung limp again with the
rest. The men passed.
"I don't like it," said
Lenina. "I don't like it."
She liked even less what awaited her at
the entrance to the pueblo, where their guide had left them while he went
inside for instructions. The dirt, to
start with, the piles of rubbish, the dust, the dogs, the flies. Her face wrinkled up into a grimace of
disgust. She held her handkerchief to
her nose.
"But how can they live like
this?" she broke out in a voice of indignant incredulity. (It wasn't
possible.)
Bernard shrugged his shoulders
philosophically. "Anyhow," he
said, "they've been doing it for the last five or six thousand years. So I suppose they must be used to it by
now."
"But cleanliness is next to
fordliness," she insisted.
"Yes, and civilization is
sterilization," Bernard went on, concluding on a tone of irony the second
hypnopaedic lesson in elementary hygiene.
"But these people have never heard of Our Ford, and they aren't
civilized. So there's no point in
..."
"Oh!" She gripped his arm. "Look."
An almost naked Indian was very slowly
climbing down the ladder from the first-floor terrace of a neighbouring house -
rung after rung, with the tremulous caution of extreme old age. His face was profoundly wrinkled and black,
like a mask of obsidian. The toothless
mouth had fallen in. At the corners of
the lips and on each side of the chin a few long bristles gleamed almost white
against the dark skin. The long unbraided
hair hung down in grey wisps round his face.
His body was bent and emaciated to the bone, almost fleshless. Very slowly he came down, pausing at each
rung before he ventured another step.
"What's the matter with him?"
whispered Lenina. Her eyes were wide
with horror and amazement.
"He's old, that's all," Bernard
answered as carelessly as he could. He
too was startled; but he made an effort to seem unmoved.
"Old?" she repeated. "But the Director's old; lots of people
are old; they're not like that."
"That's because we don't allow them
to be like that. We preserve them from
diseases. We keep their internal
secretions artificially balanced at a youthful equilibrium. We don't permit their magnesium-calcium ratio
to fall below what it was at thirty. We
give them transfusions of young blood.
We keep their metabolism permanently stimulated. So, of course, they don't look like that. Partly," he added, "because most of
them die long before they reach this old creature's age. Youth almost unimpaired till sixty, and then,
crack! the end."
But Lenina was not listening. She was watching the old man. Slowly, slowly he came down. His feet touched the ground. He turned.
In their deep-sunken orbits his eyes were still extraordinarily
bright. They looked at her for a long
moment expressionlessly, without surprise, as though she had not been there at
all. Then slowly, with bent back, the
old man hobbled past them and was gone.
"But it's terrible," Lenina
whispered. "It's awful. We ought not to have come here." She felt in her pocket for her soma -
only to discover that, by some unprecedented oversight, she had left the bottle
down at the rest-house. Bernard's
pockets were also empty.
Lenina was left to face the horrors of
Malpais unaided. They came crowding in
on her thick and fast. The spectacle of
two young women giving the breast to their babies made her blush and turn away
her face. She had never seen anything so
indecent in her life. And what made it
worse was that, instead of tactfully ignoring it, Bernard proceeded to make
open comments on this revoltingly viviparous scene. Ashamed, now that the effects of the soma
had worn off, of the weakness he had displayed that morning in the hotel, he
went out of his way to show himself strong and unorthodox.
"What a wonderfully intimate
relationship," he said, deliberately outrageous. "And what an intensity of feeling it
must generate! I often think one may
have missed something in not having had a mother. And perhaps you've missed something in not being
a mother, Lenina. Imagine yourself
sitting there with a little baby of your own ..."
"Bernard! How can you?" The passage of an old woman with opthalmia
and a disease of the skin distracted her from her indignation.
"Let's go away," she begged. "I don't like it."
But at this moment their guide came back
and, beckoning to them to follow, led the way down the narrow street between
the houses. They rounded a corner. A dead dog was lying on a rubbish heap; a
woman with a goitre was looking for lice in the hair of a small girl. Their guide halted at the foot of a ladder,
raised his hand perpindicularly, then darted it horizontally forward. They did what he mutely commanded - climbed
the ladder and walked through the doorway, to which it gave access, into a long
narrow room, rather dark and smelling of smoke and cooked grease and long-worn,
long-unwashed clothes. At the further
end of the room was another doorway, through which came a shaft of sunlight and
the noise, very loud and close, of the drums.
They stepped across the threshold and
found themselves on a wide terrace.
Below them, shut in by the tall houses, was the village square, crowded
with Indians. Bright blankets, and
feathers in black hair, and the glint of turquoise, and dark skins shining with
heat. Lenina put her handkerchief to her
nose again. In the open space at the
centre of the square were two circular platforms of masonry and trampled clay -
the roofs, it was evident, of underground chambers; for in the centre of each platform
was an open hatchway, with a ladder emerging from the lower darkness. A sound of subterranean flute-playing came up
and was almost lost in the steady remorseless persistence of the drums.
Lenina liked the drums. Shutting her eyes she abandoned herself to
their soft repeated thunder, allowed it to invade her consciousness more and
more completely, till at last there was nothing left in the world but the one
deep pulse of sound. It reminded her
reassuringly of the synthetic noises made at Solidarity Services and Ford's Day
celebrations. "Orgy-porgy,"
she whispered to herself. These drums
beat out just the same rhythms.
There was a sudden startling burst of
singing - hundreds of male voices crying out fiercely in harsh metallic
unison. A few long notes and silence,
the thunderous silence of the drums; then shrill, in a neighbouring treble, the
women's answer. Then again the drums;
and once more the men's deep savage affirmation of their manhood.
Queer - yes. The place was queer, so was the music, so
were the clothes and the goitres and the skin diseases and the old people. But the performance itself - there seemed to
be nothing specially queer about that.
"It reminds me of a lower-caste
Community Sing," she told Bernard.
But a little later it was reminding her a
good deal less of that innocuous function.
For suddenly there had swarmed up from those round chambers underground
a ghastly troop of monsters. Hideously masked
or painted out of all semblance of humanity, they had tramped out a strange
limping dance round the square; round and again round, singing as they went,
round and round - each time a little faster; and the drums had changed and
quickened their rhythm, so that it became like the pulsing of fever in the
ears; and the crowd had begun to sing with the dancers, louder and louder; and
first one woman had shrieked, and then another and another, as though they were
being killed; and then suddenly the leader of the dance broke out of the line,
ran to a big wooden chest which was standing at one end of the square, raised
the lid and pulled out a pair of black snakes.
A great yell went up from the crowd, and all the other dancers ran
towards him with outstretched hands. He
tossed the snakes to the first-comers, then dipped back into the chest for
more. More and more, black snakes and
brown and mottled - he flung them out.
And then the dance began again on a different rhythm. Round and round they went with their snakes,
snakily, with a soft undulating movement at the knees and hips. Round and round. Then the leader gave a signal, and one after
another, all the snakes were flung down in the middle of the square; an old man
came up from underground and sprinkled them with corn meal, and from the other
hatchway came a woman and sprinkled them with water from a black jar. Then the old man lifted his hand and,
startlingly, terrifyingly, there was absolute silence. The drums stopped beating, life seemed to
have come to an end. The old man pointed
towards the two hatchways that gave entrance to the lower world. And slowly, raised by invisible hands from
below, there emerged from the one a painted image of an eagle, from the other
that of a man, naked, and nailed to a cross.
They hung there, seemingly self-sustained, as though watching. The old man clapped his hands. Naked but for a white cotton breech-cloth, a
boy of about eighteen stepped out of the crowd and stood before him, his hands
crossed over his chest, his head bowed.
The old man made the sign of the cross over him and turned away. Slowly, the boy began to walk round the
writhing heap of snakes. He had
completed the first circuit and was half-way through the second when, from
among the dancers, a tall man wearing the mask of a coyote and holding in his
hand a whip of plaited leather, advanced towards him. The boy moved on as though unaware of the
other's existence. The coyote-man raised
his whip; there was a long moment of expectancy, then a swift movement, the
whistle of the lash and its loud flat-sounding impact on the flesh. The boy's body quivered; but he made no
sound, he walked on at the same slow, steady pace. The coyote struck again, again; and at every
blow at first a gasp and then a deep groan went up from the crowd. The boy walked on. Twice, thrice, four times round he went. The blood was streaming. Five times round, six times round. Suddenly Lenina covered her face with her
hands and began to sob. "Oh, stop
them, stop them!" she implored. But
the whip fell and fell inexorably. Seven
times round. Then all at once the boy
staggered and, still without a sound, pitched forward on to his face. Bending over him, the old man touched his
back with a long white feather, held it up for a moment, crimson, for the
people to see, then shook it thrice over the snakes. A few drops fell, and suddenly the drums broke
out again into a panic of hurrying notes; there was a great shout. The dancers rushed forward, picked up the
snakes and ran out of the square. Men,
women, children, all the crowd ran after them.
A minute later the square was empty, only the boy remained, prone where
he had fallen, quite still. Three old
women came out of one of the houses, and with some difficulty lifted him and
carried him in. The eagle and the man on
the cross kept guard for a little while over the empty pueblo; then, as though
they had seen enough, sank slowly down through their hatchways, out of sight,
into the nether world.
Lenina was still sobbing. "Too awful," she kept repeating,
and all Bernard's consolations were in vain.
"Too awful! That
blood!" She shuddered. "Oh, I wish I had my soma,"
There was the sound of feet in the inner
room.
Lenina did not move, but sat with her
face in her hands, unseeing, apart. Only
Bernard turned round.
The dress of the young man who now stepped
out on to the terrace was Indian, but his plaited hair was straw-coloured, his
eyes pale blue, and his skin a white skin, bronzed.
"Hullo. Good-morrow," said the stranger, in
faultless but peculiar English.
"You're civilized, aren't you?
You come from the Other Place, outside the Reservation?"
"Who on earth ...?" Bernard
began in astonishment.
The young man sighed and shook his
head. "A most unhappy
gentleman." And, pointing to the
bloodstains in the centre of the square, "Do you see that damned
spot?" he asked in a voice that trembled with emotion.
"A gramme is better than a
damn," said Lenina mechanically from behind her hands. "I wish I had my soma!"
"I ought to have been
there," the young man went on.
"Why wouldn't they let me be the sacrifice? I'd have gone round ten times - twelve,
fifteen. Palowhtiwa only got as far as
seven. They could have had twice as much
blood from me. The multitudinous seas
incarnadine." He flung out his arms
in a lavish gesture; then, despairingly, let them fall again. "But they wouldn't let me. They disliked me for my complexion. It's always been like that. Always."
Tears stood in the young man's eyes; he was ashamed and turned away.
Astonishment made Lenina forget the
deprivation of soma. She
uncovered her face and, for the first time, looked at the stranger. "Do you mean to say that you wanted
to be hit with that whip?"
Still averted from her, the young man
made a sign of affirmation. "For
the sake of the pueblo - to make the rain come and the corn grow. And to please Pookong and Jesus. And then to show that I can bear pain without
crying out. Yes," and his voice
suddenly took on a new resonance, he turned with a proud squaring of the
shoulders, a proud, defiant lifting of the chin, "to show that I'm a man
... Oh!" He gave a gasp and was
silent, gaping. He had seen, for the
first time in his life, the face of a girl whose cheeks were not the colour of
chocolate or dogskin, whose hair was auburn and permanently waved, and whose
expression (amazing novelty!) was one of benevolent interest. Lenina was smiling at him; such a
nice-looking boy, she was thinking, and a really beautiful body. The blood rushed up into the young man's
face; he dropped his eyes, raised them again for a moment only to find her
still smiling at him, and was so much overcome that he had to turn away and
pretend to be looking very hard at something on the other side of the square.
Bernard's questions made a
diversion. Who? How?
When? From where? Keeping his eyes fixed on Bernard's face (for
so passionately did he long to see Lenina smiling that he simply dared not look
at her), the young man tried to explain himself. Linda and he - Linda was his mother (the word
made Lenina look uncomfortable) - were strangers in the Reservation. Linda had come from the Other Place long ago,
before he was born, with a man who was his father. (Bernard pricked up his ears.) She had gone walking alone in those mountains
over there to the North, had fallen down a steep place and hurt her head. ("Go on, go on," said Bernard
excitedly.) Some hunters from Malpais
had found her and brought her to the pueblo.
As for the man who was his father, Linda had never seen him again. His name was Tomakin. (Yes, 'Thomas' was the D.H.C.'s first
name.) He must have flown away, back to
the Other Place, away without her - a bad, unkind, unnatural man.
"And so I was born in Malpais,"
he concluded. "In
Malpais." And he shook his head.
The squalor of that little house on the
outskirts of the pueblo!
A space of dust and rubbish separated it
from the village. Two famine-stricken
dogs were nosing obscenely in the garbage at its door. Inside, when they entered, the twilight stank
and was loud with flies.
"Linda!" the young man called.
From the inner room a rather hoarse
female voice said "Coming."
They waited. In bowls on the floor were the remains of a
meal, perhaps of several meals.
The door opened. A very stout blonde squaw stepped across the
threshold and stood looking at the strangers, staring incredulously, her mouth
open. Lenina noticed with disgust that
two of the front teeth were missing. And
the colour of the ones that remained ... She shuddered. It was worse than the old man. So fat.
And all the lines in her face, the flabbiness, the wrinkles. And the sagging cheeks, with those purplish
blotches. And the red veins on her nose,
the bloodshot eyes. And that neck - that
neck; and the blankets she wore over her head - ragged and filthy. And under the brown sack-shaped tunic those
enormous breasts, the bulge of the stomach, the hips. Oh, much worse than the old man, much
worse! And suddenly the creature burst
out in a torrent of speech, rushed at her with outstretched arms and -
Ford! Ford! it was too revolting, in
another moment she'd be sick - pressed her against the bulge, the bosom, and
began to kiss her. Ford! to kiss,
slobberingly, and smelt too horrible, obviously never had a bath, and simply
reeked of that beastly stuff that was put into Delta and Epsilon bottles (no,
it wasn't true about Bernard), positively stank of alcohol. She broke away as quickly as she could.
A blubbered and distorted face confronted
her; the creature was crying.
"Oh, my dear, my dear." The torrent of words flowed sobbingly. "If you knew how glad - after all these
years! A civilized face. Yes, and civilized clothes. Because I thought I should never see a piece
of real acetate silk again." She
fingered the sleeve of Lenina's shirt.
The nails were black. "And
those adorable viscose velveteen shorts!
Do you know, dear, I've still got my old clothes, the ones I came in,
put away in a box. I'll show them to you
afterwards. Though, of course, the
acetate has all gone into holes. But
such a lovely white bandolier - though I must say your green morocco is even
lovelier. Not that it did me much
good, that bandolier." Her tears
began to flow again. "I suppose
John told you. What I had to suffer -
and not a gramme of soma to be had.
Only a drink of mescal every now and then, when Popé used to
bring it. Popé is a boy I used to
know. But it makes you feel so bad
afterwards, the mescal does, and you're sick with the peyotl;
besides, it always made that awful feeling of
being ashamed much worse the next day.
And I was so ashamed. Just
think of it: me, a Beta - having a baby: put yourself in my place." (The mere suggestion made Lenina
shudder.) "Though I wasn't my
fault, I swear; because I still don't know how it happened, seeing that I did
all the Malthusian drill - you know, by numbers, One, two, three, four, always,
I swear it; but all the same it happened; and of course there wasn't anything
like an Abortion Centre here. Is it
still down in Chelsea, by the way?" she asked. Lenina nodded. "And still floodlighted on Tuesdays and
Fridays?" Lenina nodded again. "That lovely pink glass
tower!" Poor Linda lifted her face
and with closed eyes ecstatically contemplated the bright remembered
image. "And the river at
night," she whispered. Great tears
oozed slowly out from between her tight-shut eyelids. "And flying back in the evening from
Stoke Poges. And then a hot bath and
vibro-vacuum massage ... But there."
She drew a deep breath, shook her head, opened her eyes again, sniffed
once or twice, then blew her nose on her fingers and wiped them on the skirt of
her tunic. "Oh, I'm so sorry,"
she said in response to Lenina's involuntary grimace of disgust. "I oughtn't to have done that. I'm sorry.
But what are you to do when there aren't any handkerchiefs? I remember how it used to upset me, all that
dirt, and nothing being aseptic. I had
an awful cut on my head when they first brought me here. You can't imagine what they used to put on
it. Filth, just filth. 'Civilization is Sterilization,' I used to
say to them. And 'Streptocock-Gee to
Banbury T, to see a fine bathroom and W.C.' as though they were children. But of course they didn't understand. How should they? And in the end I suppose I got used to
it. And anyhow, how can you keep
things clean when there isn't hot water laid on? And look at these clothes. This beastly wool isn't like acetate. It lasts and lasts. And you're supposed to mend it if it gets
torn. But I'm a Beta; I worked in the
Fertilizing Room; nobody ever taught me to do anything like that. It wasn't my business. Besides, it never used to be right to mend
clothes. Throw them away when they've
got holes in them and buy new. 'The more
stitches, the less riches.' Isn't that
right? Mending's anti-social. But it's all different here. It's like living with lunatics. Everything they do is mad." She looked round; saw John and Bernard had
left them and were walking up and down in the dust and garbage outside the
house; but nonetheless confidentially lowering her voice, and leaning, while
Lenina stiffened and shrank, so close that the blown reek of embryo-poison
stirred the hair on her cheek. "For
instance," she hoarsely whispered, "take the way they have one
another here. Mad, I tell you,
absolutely mad. Everybody belongs to
everyone else - don't they? don't they?" she insisted, tugging at Lenina's
sleeve. Lenina nodded her averted head,
let out the breath she had been holding and managed to draw another one,
relatively untainted. "Well,
here," the other went on, "nobody's supposed to belong to more than
one person. And if you have people in
the ordinary way, the others think you're wicked and anti-social. They hate and despise you. Once a lot of women came and made a scene
because their men came to see me. Well,
why not? And then they rushed at me ...
No, it was too awful. I can't tell you
about it." Linda covered her face
with her hands and shuddered. "They're
so hateful, the women here. Mad, mad and
cruel. And of course they don't know
anything about Malthusian drill, or bottles, or decanting, or anything of that
sort. So they're having children all the
time - like dogs. It's too
revolting. And to think that I ... Oh,
Ford, Ford, Ford! And yet John was
a great comfort to me. I don't know what
I should have done without him. Even
though he did get so upset whenever a man ... Quite as a tiny boy, even. Once (but that was when he was bigger) he
tried to kill poor Waihusiwa - or was it Popé - just became I used to have them
sometimes. Because I never could
make him understand that that was what civilized people ought to do. Being mad's infectious, I believe. Anyhow, John seems to have caught it from the
Indians. Because, of course, he was with
them a lot. Even though they were so
beastly to him and wouldn't let him do all the things the other boys did. Which was a good thing in a way, because it
made it easier for me to condition him a little. Though you've no idea how difficult that is. There's so much one doesn't know; it wasn't
my business to know. I mean, when a child
asks you how a helicopter works or who made the world - well, what are you to
answer if you're a Beta and have always worked in the Fertilizing Room. What are you to answer?"
Chapter VIII
Outside,
in the dust and among the garbage (there were four dogs now), Bernard and John
were walking slowly up and down.
"So hard for me to realize,"
Bernard was saying, "to reconstruct.
As though we were living on different planets, in different
centuries. A mother, and all this dirt,
and gods, and old age, and disease ..."
He shook his head. "It's
almost inconceivable. I shall never
understand unless you explain."
"Explain what?"
"This." He indicated the pueblo. "That." And it was the little house outside the
village. "Everything. All your life."
"But what is there to say?"
"From the beginning. As far back as you can remember."
"As far back as I can
remember." John frowned. There was a long silence.
It was very hot. They had eaten a lot of tortillas and sweet
corn. Linda said, "Come and lie
down, Baby." They lay down together
in the big bed. "Sing," and
Linda sang. Sang 'Streptocock-Gee to
Banbury T' and 'Bye, Baby Banting, soon you'll need decanting.' Her voice got fainter and fainter ...
There was a loud noise, and he woke with
a start. A man was standing by the bed,
enormous, frightening. He was saying
something to Linda, and Linda was laughing.
She had pulled the blanket up to her chin, but the man pulled it down
again. His hair was like two black
ropes, and round his arm was a lovely silver bracelet; but all the same he was
frightened; he hid his face against Linda's body. Linda put her hand on him and he felt
safer. In those other words he did not
understand so well, she said to the man, "Not with John here." The man looked at him, then again at Linda,
and said a few words in a soft voice.
Linda said, "No." But
the man bent over the bed towards him and his face was huge, terrible; the black
ropes of hair touched the blanket.
"No," Linda said again, and he felt her hand squeezing him
more tightly. "No, no!" But the man took hold of one of his arms, and
it hurt. He screamed. The man put out his other arm and lifted him
up. Linda was still holding him, still
saying "No, no." The man said
something short and angry, and suddenly her hands were gone. "Linda, Linda." He kicked and wriggled; but the man carried
him across to the door, opened it, put him down on the floor in the middle of the
other room, and went away, shutting the door behind him. He got up, he ran to the door. Standing on tiptoe he could just reach the
big wooden latch. He lifted it and
pushed; but the door wouldn't open.
"Linda," he shouted.
She didn't answer.
He remembered a huge room, rather dark;
and there were big wooden things with strings fastened to them, and lots of
women standing round them - making blankets, Linda said. Linda told him to sit in the corner with the
other children, while she went and helped the women. He played with the little boys for a long
time. Suddenly people started talking
very loud, and there were the women pushing Linda away, and Linda was
crying. She went to the door and he ran
after her. He asked her why they were
angry. "Because I broke
something," she said. And then she
got angry too. "How should I know
how to do their beastly weaving?" she said. "Beastly savages." He asked her what savages were. When they got back to their house, Popé was
waiting at the door, and he came in with them.
He had a big gourd full of stuff that looked like water; only it wasn't
water, but something with a bad smell that burnt your mouth and made you
cough. Linda drank some and Popé drank
some, and then Linda laughed a lot and talked very loud; and then she and Popé
went into the other room. When Popé went
away, he went into the room. Linda was
in bed and so fast asleep that he couldn't wake her.
Popé used to come often. He said the stuff in the gourd was called mescal;
but Linda said it ought to be called soma; only it made you feel ill
afterwards. He hated Popé. He hated them all - all the men who came to
see Linda. One afternoon, when he had
been playing with the other children - it was cold, he remembered, and there
was snow on the mountains - he came back to the house and heard angry voices in
the bedroom. They were women's voices,
and they said words he didn't understand; but he knew they were dreadful
words. Then suddenly, crash! something
was upset; he heard people moving about quickly, and there was another crash
and then a noise like hitting a mule, only not so bony; then Linda
screamed. "Oh, don't, don't,
don't!" she said. He ran in. There were three women in dark blankets. Linda was on the bed. One of the women was holding her wrists. Another was lying across her legs, so that
she couldn't kick. The third was hitting
her with a whip. Once, twice, three
times; and each time Linda screamed.
Crying, he tugged at the fringe of the woman's blanket. "Please, please." With her free hand she held him away. The whip came down again, and again Linda
screamed. He caught hold of the woman's
enormous brown hand between his own and bit it with all his might. She cried out, wrenched her hand free, and
gave him such a push that he fell down.
While he was lying on the ground she hit him three times with the
whip. It hurt more than anything he had
ever felt - like fire. The whip whistled
again, fell. But this time it was Linda
who screamed.
"But why did they want to hurt you,
Linda?" he asked that night. He was
crying, because the red marks of the whip on his back still hurt so
terribly. But he was also crying because
people were so beastly and unfair, and because he was only a little boy and
couldn't do anything against them. Linda
was crying too. She was grown up, but
she wasn't big enough to fight against three of them. It wasn't fair for her either. "Why did they want to hurt you,
Linda?"
"I don't know. How should I know?" It was difficult to hear what she said,
because she was lying on her stomach and her face was in the pillow. "They say those men are their
men," she went on; and she did not seem to be talking to him at all; she
seemed to be talking with someone inside herself. A long talk which he didn't understand; and
in the end she started crying louder than ever.
"Oh, don't cry, Linda. Don't cry."
He pressed himself against her. He put his arm round her neck. Linda cried out. "Oh, be careful. My shoulder!
Oh!" and she pushed him away, hard.
His head banged against the wall.
"Little idiot!" she shouted; and then, suddenly, she began to slap
him. Slap, slap ...
"Linda," he cried out. "Oh, mother, don't!"
"I'm not your mother. I won't be your mother."
"But, Linda ... Oh!" She slapped him on the cheek.
"Turned into a savage," she
shouted. "Having young ones like an
animal ... If it hadn't been for you, I might have gone to the Inspector, I
might have got away. But not with a
baby. That would have been too
shameful."
He saw that she was going to hit him
again, and lifted his arm to guard his face. "Oh, don't, Linda, please
don't."
"Little beast!" She pulled down his arm; his face was
uncovered.
"Don't, Linda." He shut his eyes, expecting the blow.
But she didn't hit him. After a little time, he opened his eyes again
and saw that she was looking at him. He
tried to smile at her. Suddenly she put
her arms round him and kissed him again and again.
Sometimes, for several days, Linda didn't
get up at all. She lay in bed and was
sad. Or else she drank the stuff that
Popé brought and laughed a great deal and went to sleep. Sometimes she was sick. Often she forgot to wash him, and there was
nothing to eat except cold tortillas. He
remembered the first time she found those little animals in his hair, how she
screamed and screamed.
The happiest times were when she told him
about the Other Place. "And you
really can go flying, whenever you like?"
"Whenever you like." And she would tell him about the lovely
music that came out of a box, and all the nice games you could play, and the
delicious things to eat and drink, and the light that came when you pressed a
little thing in the wall, and the pictures that you could hear and feel and
smell, as well as see, and another box for making nice smells, and the pink and
green and blue and silver houses as high as mountains, and everybody happy and
no-one ever sad or angry, and everyone belonging to everyone else, and the
boxes where you could see and hear what was happening at the other side of the
world, and babies in lovely clean bottles - everything so clean, and no nasty
smells, no dirt at all - and people never lonely, but living together and being
so jolly and happy, like the summer dances here in Malpais, but much happier,
and the happiness being there every day, every day ... He listened by the hour. And sometimes, when he and the other children
were tired with too much playing, one of the old men of the pueblo would talk
to them, in those other words, of the Great Transformer of the World, and of
the long fight between Right Hand and Left Hand, between Wet and Dry; of
Awonawilona, who made a great fog by thinking in the night, and then made the
whole world out of the fog; of Earth Mother and Sky Father; of Ahaiyuta and
Marsailema, the twins of War and Chance; of Jesus and Pookong; of Mary and
Etsanatlehi, the woman who makes herself young again; of the Black Stone at
Laguna and the great Eagle and Our Lady of Acoma. Strange stories, all the more wonderful to
him for being told in the other words and so not fully understood. Lying in bed, he would think of Heaven and
London and Our Lady of Acoma and the rows and rows of babies in clean bottles
and Jesus flying up and Linda flying up and the great Director of World
Hatcheries and Awonawilona.
Lots of men came to see Linda. The boys began to point their fingers at
him. In the strange other words they
said that Linda was bad; they called her names he did not understand, but that
he knew were bad names. One day they
sang a song about her, again and again.
He threw stones at them. They
threw back; a sharp stone cut his cheek.
The blood wouldn't stop; he was covered with blood.
Linda taught him to read. With a piece of
charcoal she drew pictures on the wall - an animal sitting down, a baby inside
a bottle; then she wrote letters. THE CAT IS
ON THE MAT. THE TOT IS
IN THE POT.
He learned quickly and easily.
When he knew how to read all the words she wrote on the wall, Linda
opened her big wooden box and pulled out from under those funny little red trousers
she never wore a thin little book. He
had often seen it before. "When
you're bigger," she had said, "you can read it." Well, now he was big enough. He was proud.
"I'm afraid you won't find it very exciting," she said. "But it's the only thing I
have." She sighed. "If only you could see the lovely
reading machines we used to have in London!" He began reading. The Chemical and Bacteriological
Conditioning of the Embryo. Practical
Instructions for Beta Embryo-Store Workers.
It took him a quarter of an hour to read the title alone. He threw the book on the floor. "Beastly, beastly book!" he said,
and began to cry.
The boys still sang their horrible song
about Linda. Sometimes, too, they
laughed at him for being so ragged. When
he tore his clothes, Linda did not know how to mend them. In the Other Place, she told him, people
threw away clothes with holes in them and got new ones. "Rags, rags!" the boys used to
shout at him. "But I can
read," he said to himself, "and they can't. They don't even know what reading
is." It was fairly easy, if he
thought hard enough about the reading, to pretend that he didn't mind when they
made fun of him. He asked Linda to give
him the book again.
The more the boys pointed and sang, the
harder he read. Soon he could read all
the words quite well. Even the
longest. But what did they mean? He asked Linda; but even when she could
answer it didn't seem to make it very clear.
And generally she couldn't answer at all.
"What are chemicals?" he would
ask.
"Oh, stuff like magnesium salts, and
alcohol for keeping the Deltas and Epsilons small and backward, and calcium
carbonate for bones, and all that sort of thing."
"But how do you make chemicals,
Linda? Where do they come from?"
"Well, I don't know. You get them out of bottles. And when the bottles are empty, you send up
to the Chemical Store for more. It's the
Chemical Store people who make them I suppose.
Or else they send to the factory for them. I don't know.
I never did any chemistry. My job
was always with the embryos."
It was the same with everything else he
asked about. Linda never seemed to
know. The old men of the pueblo had much
more definite answers.
"The seed of men and of all
creatures, the seed of the sun and the seed of earth and the seed of the sky -
Awonawilona made them all out of the Fog of Increase. Now the world has four wombs; and the laid
the seeds in the lowest of the four wombs.
And gradually the seeds began to grow ..."
One day (John calculated later that it
must have been soon after his twelfth birthday) he came home and found a book
that he had never seen before lying on the floor in the bedroom. It was a thick book and looked very old. The binding had been eaten by mice; some of
its pages were loose and crumpled. He
picked it up, looked at the title page: the book was called The Complete
Works of William Shakespeare.
Linda was lying on the bed, sipping that
horrible stinking mescal out of a cup.
"Popé brought it," she said.
Her voice was thick and hoarse like somebody else's voice. "It was lying in one of the chests of the
Antelope Kiva. It's supposed to have
been there for hundreds of years. I
expect it's true, because I looked at it, and it seemed to be full of nonsense. Uncivilized.
Still, it'll be good enough for you to practise your reading
on." She took a last sip, set the
cup down on the floor beside the bed, turned over on her side, hiccoughed once
or twice and went to sleep.
He opened the book at random
Nay, but to live
In the
rank sweat of an enseamed bed,
Stew'd in
corruption, honeying and making love
Over the
nasty sty ...
The strange words rolled through his
mind; rumbled, like talking thunder; like the drums at the summer dances, if
the drums could have spoken; like the men singing the Corn Song, beautiful, beautiful,
so that you cried; like old Mitsima saying magic over his feathers and his
carved sticks and his bits of bone and stone - kiathla tsilu silokwe silokwe
silokwe. Kiai silu silu, tsithl -
but better than Mitsima's magic, because it meant more, because it talked to him;
talked wonderfully and only half-understandably, a terrible beautiful magic,
about Linda; about Linda lying there snoring, with the empty cup on the floor
beside the bed; about Linda and Popé, Linda and Popé.
He hated Popé more and more. A man can smile and smile and be a
villain. Remorseless, treacherous,
lecherous, kindless villain. What did
the words exactly mean? He only half
knew. But their magic was strong and
went on rumbling in his head, and somehow it was as though he had never really
hated Popé before; never really hated him because he had never been able to say
how much he hated him. But now he had
these words, these words like drums and singing and magic. These words and the strange, strange story
out of which they were taken (he couldn't make head or tail of it, but it was
wonderful, wonderful all the same) - they gave him a reason for hating Popé;
and they made his hatred more real; they even made Popé himself more real.
One day, when he came in from playing, the
door of the inner room was open, and he saw them lying together on the bed,
asleep - white Linda and Popé almost black beside her, with one arm under her
shoulders and the other dark hand on her breast, and one of the plaits of his
long hair lying across her throat, like a black snake trying to strangle
her. Popé's gourd and a cup were
standing on the floor near the bed.
Linda was snoring.
His heart seemed to have disappeared and
left a hole. He was empty. Empty, and cold, and rather sick, and giddy. He leaned against the wall to steady
himself. Remorseless, treacherous,
lecherous ... Like drums, like the men singing for the corn, like magic, the
words repeated and repeated themselves in his head. From being cold he was suddenly hot. His cheeks burnt with the rush of blood, the
room swam and darkened before his eyes.
He ground his teeth. "I'll
kill him, I'll kill him, I'll kill him," he kept saying. And suddenly there were more words.
When
he is drunk asleep, or in his rage
Or in the
incestuous pleasure of his bed ...
The
magic was on his side, the magic explained and gave orders. He stepped back into the outer room. "When he is drunk asleep ..." The knife for the meat was lying on the floor
near the fireplace. He picked it up and
tiptoed to the door again. "When he
is drunk asleep, drunk asleep ..."
He ran across the room and stabbed - oh, the blood! - stabbed again, as
Popé heaved out of his sleep, lifted his hand to stab once more, but found his
wrist caught, held and - oh, oh! - twisted.
He couldn't move, he was trapped, and there were Popé's small black
eyes, very close, staring into his own.
He looked away. There were two
cuts on Popé's left shoulder. "Oh,
look at the blood!" Linda was crying.
"Look at the blood!"
She had never been able to bear the sight of blood. Popé lifted his other hand - to strike him,
he thought. He stiffened to receive the
blow. But the hand only took him under
the chin and turned his face, so that he had to look again into Popé's
eyes. For a long time, for hours and
hours. And suddenly - he couldn't help
it - he began to cry. Popé burst out
laughing. "Go," he said, in the
other Indian words. "Go, my brave
Ahaiyuta." He ran out into the
other room to hide his tears.
"You are fifteen," said old
Mitsima, in the Indian words. "Now
I may teach you to work the clay."
Squatting by the river, they worked
together.
"First of all," said Mitsima,
taking a lump of the wetted clay between his hands, "we make a little
moon." The old man squeezed the lump
into a disc, then bent up the edges; the moon became a shallow cup.
Slowly and unskilfully he imitated the
old man's delicate gestures.
"A moon, a cup, and now a
snake." Mitsima rolled out another
piece of clay into a long flexible cylinder, hooped it into a circle and
pressed it on to the rim of the cup.
"Then another snake. And
another. And another." Round by round, Mitsima built up the sides of
the pot; it was narrow, it bulged, it narrowed again towards the neck. Mitsima squeezed and patted, stroked and
scraped; and there at last it stood, in shape the familiar waterpot of Malpais,
but creamy white instead of black, and still soft to the touch. The crooked parody of Mitsima's, his own
stood beside it. Looking at the two
pots, he had to laugh.
"But the next one will be
better," he said, and began to moisten another piece of clay.
To fashion, to give form, to feel his
fingers gaining in skill and power - this gave him an extraordinary
pleasure. "A, B, C, Vitamin
D," he sang to himself as he worked, "The fat's in the liver, the
cod's in the sea." And Mitsima also
sang - a song about killing a bear. They
worked all day, and all day he was filled with an intense, absorbing happiness.
"Next winter," said old
Mitsima, "I will teach you to make the bow."
He stood for a long time outside the
house; and at last the ceremonies within were finished. The door opened; they came out. Kothlu came first, his right hand
outstretched and tightly closed, as though over some precious jewel. Her clenched hand similarly outstretched,
Kiakimé followed. They walked in
silence, and in silence, behind them, came the brothers and sisters and cousins
and all the troop of old people.
They walked out of the pueblo, across the
mesa. At the edge of the cliff they
halted, facing the early morning sun.
Kothlu opened his hand. A pinch
of corn meal lay white on the palm; he breathed on it, murmured a few words,
then threw it, a handful of white dust, towards the sun. Kiakimé did the same. Then Kiakimé's father stepped forward, and
holding up a feathered prayer stick, made a long prayer, then threw the stick
after the corn meal.
"It is finished," said old
Mitsima in a loud voice. "They are
married."
"Well," said Linda, as they
turned away, "all I can say is, it does seem a lot of fuss to make about
so little. In civilized countries, when
a boy wants to have a girl, he just ... But where are you going,
John?"
He paid no attention to her calling, but
ran on, away, away, anywhere to be by himself.
It is finished. Old Mitsima's words repeated themselves in
his mind. Finished, finished ... In silence and from a long way off, but violently,
desperately, hopelessly, he had loved Kiakimé.
And now it was finished. He was
sixteen.
At the full moon, in the Antelope Kiva,
secrets would be told, secrets would be done and borne. They would go down, boys, into the kiva and
come out again, men. The boys were all
afraid and at the same time impatient.
And at last it was the day. The
sun went down, the moon rose. He went
with the others. Men were standing,
dark, at the entrance to the kiva; the ladder went down into the red lighted
depths. Already the leading boys had
begun to climb down. Suddenly one of the
men stepped forward, caught him by the arm, and pulled him out of the
ranks. He broke free and dodged back
into his place among the others. This
time the man struck him, pulled his hair.
"Not for you, white hair!"
"Not for the son of the she-dog," said one of the other
men. The boys laughed. "Go!" And as he still hovered on the fringes of the
group, "Go!" the men shouted again.
One of them bent down, took a stone, threw it. "Go, go, go!" There was a shower of stones. Bleeding, he ran away into the darkness. From the red-lit kiva came the noise of
singing. The last of the boys had
climbed down the ladder. He was all
alone.
All alone, outside the pueblo, on the
bare plain of the mesa. The rock was
like bleached bones in the moonlight.
Down in the valley, the coyotes were howling at the moon. The bruises hurt him, the cuts were still
bleeding; but it was not for pain that he sobbed; it was because he was all
alone, because he had been driven out, alone, into this skeleton world of rocks
and moonlight. At the edge of the
precipice he sat down. The moon was
behind him; he looked down into the black shadow of the mesa, into the black
shadow of death. He had only to take one
step, one little jump ... He held out his right hand in the moonlight. From the cut on his wrist the blood was still
oozing. Every few seconds a drop fell,
dark, almost colourless in the dead light.
Drop, drop, drop. Tomorrow and
tomorrow and tomorrow ...
He had discovered Time and Death and God.
"Alone, always alone," the
young man was saying.
The words awoke a plaintive echo in
Bernard's mind. Alone, alone ...
"So am I," he said, on a gush of confidingness. "Terribly alone."
"Are you?" John looked surprised. "I thought that in the Other Place ... I
mean, Linda always said that nobody was every alone there."
Bernard blushed uncomfortably. "You see," he said, mumbling and
with averted eyes, "I'm rather different from most people, I suppose. If one happens to be decanted different
..."
"Yes, that's just it." The young man nodded. "If one's different, one's bound to be
lonely. They're beastly to one. Do you know, they shut me out of absolutely
everything? When the other boys were sent
out to spend the night on the mountains - you know, when you have to dream
which your sacred animal is - they wouldn't let me go with the others; they
wouldn't tell me any of the secrets. I
did it by myself, though," he added.
"Didn't eat anything for five days and then went out one night
alone into those mountains there."
He pointed.
Patronizingly, Bernard smiled. "And did you dream of anything?" he
asked.
The other nodded. "But I mustn't tell you what." He was silent for a little; then, in a low
voice, "Once," he went on, "I did something that none of the
others did: I stood against a rock in the middle of the day, in summer, with my
arms out, like Jesus on the cross."
"What on earth for?"
"I wanted to know what it was like
being crucified. Hanging there in the
sun ..."
"But why?"
"Why? Well ...” He hesitated. "Because I felt I ought to. If Jesus could stand it. And then, if one has done something wrong ...
Besides, I was unhappy; that was another reason."
"It seems a funny way of curing your
unhappiness," said Bernard. But on
second thoughts he decided that there was, after all, some sense in it. Better than taking soma ...
"I fainted after a time," said
the young man. "Fell down on my
face. Do you see the mark where I cut
myself?" He lifted the thick yellow
hair from his forehead. The scar showed,
pale and puckered, on his right temple.
Bernard looked, and then quickly, with a
little shudder, averted his eyes. His
conditioning had made him not so much pitiful and profoundly squeamish. The mere suggestion of illness or wounds was
to him not only horrifying, but even repulsive and rather disgusting. Like dirt, or deformity, or old age. Hastily he changed the subject.
"I wonder if you'd like to come back
to London with us?" he asked, making the first move in a campaign whose
strategy he had been secretly elaborating ever since, in the little house, he
had realized who the 'father' of this little savage must be. "Would you like that?"
The young man's face lit up. "Do you really mean it?"
"Of course; if I can get permission,
that is."
"Linda too?"
"Well ...” He hesitated
doubtfully. That revolting
creature! No, it was impossible. Unless, unless ... It suddenly occurred to
Bernard that her very revoltingness might prove an enormous asset. "But of course!" he cried, making
up for his first hesitations with an excess of noisy cordiality.
The young man drew a deep breath. "To think it should be coming true -
what I've dreamt of all my life. Do you
remember what Miranda says?"
"Who's Miranda?"
But the young man had evidently not heard
the question. "O wonder!" he
was saying; and his eyes shone, his face was brightly flushed. "How many goodly creatures are there
here! How beauteous mankind
is!" The flush suddenly deepened;
he was thinking of Lenina, of an angel in bottle-green viscose, lustrous with
youth and skin food, plump, benevolently smiling. His voice faltered. "O brave new world," he began, then
suddenly interrupted himself; the blood had left his cheeks; he was as pale as
paper. "Are you married to
her?" he asked.
"Am I what?"
"Married. You know - for ever. They say 'for ever' in the Indian words; it
can't be broken."
"Ford, no!" Bernard couldn't help laughing.
John also laughed, but for another reason
- laughed for pure joy.
"O brave new world," he
repeated. "O brave new world that
has such people in it. Let's start at
once."
"You have a most peculiar way of
talking sometimes," said Bernard, staring at the young man in perplexed
astonishment. "And, anyhow, hadn't
you better wait till you actually see the new world?"
Chapter IX
Lenina
felt herself entitled, after this day of queerness and horror, to a complete
and absolute holiday. As soon as they
got back to the rest-house, she swallowed six half-gramme tablets of soma,
lay down on her bed, and within ten minutes had embarked for lunar
eternity. It would be eighteen hours at
the least before she was in time again.
Bernard meanwhile lay pensive and
wide-eyed in the dark. It was long after
midnight before he fell asleep. Long
after midnight; but his insomnia had not been fruitless; he had a plan.
Punctually, on the following morning, at
ten o'clock, the green-uniformed octoroon stepped out of his helicopter. Bernard was waiting for him among the agaves.
"Miss Crowne's gone on soma-holiday,"
he explained. "Can hardly be back
before five. Which leaves us seven
hours."
He could fly to Santa Fé, do all the
business he had to do, and be in Malpais again long before she woke up.
"She'll be quite safe here by
herself?"
"Safe as helicopters," the
octoroon assured him.
They climbed into the machine and started
off at once. At ten thirty-four they
landed on the roof of the Santa Fé Post Office; at ten thirty-seven Bernard had
got through to the World Controller's Office in Whitehall; at ten thirty-nine
he was speaking to his fordship's fourth personal secretary; at ten forty-four
he was repeating his story to the first secretary, and at ten forty-seven and a
half it was the deep, resonant voice of Mustapha Mond himself that sounded in
his ears.
"I ventured to think,"
stammered Bernard, "that your fordship might find the matter of sufficient
scientific interest ..."
"Yes, I do find it of sufficient
scientific interest," said the deep voice.
"Bring these two individuals back to London with you."
"Your fordship is aware that I shall
need a special permit ..."
"The necessary orders," said
Mustapha Mond, "are being sent to the Warden of the Reservation at this
moment. You will proceed at once to the
Warden's Office. Good-morning, Mr
Marx."
There was silence. Bernard hung up the receiver and hurried up
to the roof.
"Warden's Office," he said to
the Gamma-green octoroon.
At ten fifty-four Bernard was shaking
hands with the Warden.
"Delighted, Mr Marx,
delighted." His boom was
deferential. "We have just received
special orders ..."
"I know," said Bernard,
interrupting him. "I was talking to
his fordship on the phone a moment ago."
His bored tone implied that he was in the habit of talking to his
fordship every day of the week. He
dropped into a chair. "If you'll
kindly take all the necessary steps as soon as possible. As soon as possible," he emphatically
repeated. He was thoroughly enjoying
himself.
At eleven three he had all the necessary
papers in his pocket.
"So long," he said
patronizingly to the Warden, who had accompanied him as far as the lift
gates. "So long."
He walked across to the hotel, had a
bath, a vibro-vac massage, and an electrolytic shave, listened to the morning's
news, looked in for half an hour on the televisor, ate a leisured luncheon, and
at half past two flew back with the octoroon to Malpais.
The young man stood outside the
rest-house.
"Bernard," he called. "Bernard!" There was no answer.
Noiseless in his deerskin moccasins, he
ran up the steps and tried the door. The
door was locked.
They were gone! Gone!
It was the most terrible thing that had ever happened to him. She had asked him to come and see them, and
now they were gone. He sat down on the
steps and cried.
Half an hour later it occurred to him to
look through the window. The first thing
he saw was a green suitcase, with the initials L.C. painted on the lid. Joy flared up like fire within him. He picked up a stone. The smashed glass tinkled on the floor. A moment later he was inside the room. He opened the green suitcase; and all at once
he was breathing Lenina's perfume, filling his lungs with her essential
being. His heart beat wildly; for a
moment he was almost faint. Then,
bending over the precious box, he touched, he lifted into the light, he
examined. The zippers on Lenina's spare
pair of viscose velveteen shorts were at first a puzzle, then, solved, a
delight. Zip, and then zip; zip, and
then zip; he was enchanted. Her green
slippers were the most beautiful things he had ever seen. He unfolded a pair of zippi-camiknicks,
blushed, put them hastily away again; but kissed a perfumed acetate
handkerchief and round a scarf round his neck.
Opening a box, he spilt a cloud of scented powder. His hands were floury with the stuff. He wiped them on his chest, on his shoulders,
on his bare arms. Delicious
perfume! He shut his eyes; he rubbed his
cheek against his own powdered arm.
Touch of smooth skin against his face, scent in his nostrils of musky
dust - her real presence.
"Lenina," he whispered.
"Lenina!"
A noise made him start, made him guiltily
turn. He crammed up his thieveries into
the suitcase and shut the lid; then listened again, looked. Not a sign of life, not a sound. And yet he had certainly heard something -
something like a sigh, something like the creak of a board. He tiptoed to the door and, cautiously
opening it, found himself looking on to a broad landing. On the opposite side of the landing was
another door, ajar. He stepped out,
pushed, peeped.
There, on a low bed, the sheet flung
back, dressed in a pair of pink one-piece zippyjamas, lay Lenina, fast asleep
and so beautiful in the midst of her curls, so touchingly childish with her
pink toes and her grave sleeping face, so trustful in the helplessness of her
limp hands and melted limbs, that the tears came to his eyes.
With an infinity of quite unnecessary
precautions - for nothing short of a pistol shot could have called Lenina back
from her soma-holiday before the appointed time - he entered the room,
he knelt on the floor beside the bed. He
gazed, he clasped his hands, his lips moved.
"Her eyes," he murmured,
"Her eyes,
her hair, her cheek, her gait, her voice;
Handlest in thy discourse, O! that her hand,
In whose comparison all whites are ink
Writing their own reproach; to whose soft
seizure
The cygnet's down is harsh ..."
A fly buzzed round
her; he waved it away.
"Flies," he remembered,
"On the white
wonder of dear Juliet's hand, may seize
And steal immortal blessings from her lips,
Who, even in pure and vestal modesty,
Still blush, as thinking their own kisses
sin."
Very slowly, with the hesitating gesture
of one who reaches forward to stroke a shy and possibly rather dangerous bird,
he put out his hand. It hung there
trembling, within an inch of those limp fingers, on the verge of contact. Did he dare?
Dare to profane with his unworthiest hand that ... No, he didn't. The bird was too dangerous. His hand dropped back. How beautiful she was! How beautiful!
Then suddenly he found himself reflecting
that he had only to take hold of the zipper at her neck and give one long,
strong pull ... He shut his eyes, he shook his head with the gesture of a dog
shaking its ears as it emerges from the water.
Detestable thought! He was
ashamed of himself. Pure and vestal
modesty ...
There was a humming in the air. Another fly trying to steal immortal
blessings? A wasp? He looked, saw nothing. The humming grew louder and louder, localized
itself as being outside the shuttered windows.
The plane! In a panic, he
scrambled to his feet and ran into the other room, vaulted through the open
window, and hurrying along the path between the tall agaves was in time to
receive Bernard Marx as he climbed out of the helicopter.
Chapter X
The hands
of all the four thousand electric clocks in all the Bloomsbury Centre's four
thousand rooms marked twenty-seven minutes past two. "This hive of industry," as the
Director was fond of calling it, was in the full buzz of work. Everyone was busy, everything in ordered
motion. Under the microscopes, their
long tails furiously lashing, spermatozoa were burrowing head first into eggs;
and, fertilized, the eggs were expanding, dividing, or if bokanovskified,
budding and breaking up into whole populations of separate embryos. From the Social Predestination Room the
escalators went rumbling down into the basement, and there, in the crimson
darkness, stewingly warm on their cushion of peritoneum and gorged with blood-surrogate
and hormones, the foetuses grew and grew or, poisoned, languished into a
stunted Epsilonhood. With a faint hum
and rattle the moving racks crawled imperceptibly through the weeks and the
recapitulated aeons to where, in the Decanting Room, the newly-unbottled babes
uttered their first yell of horror and amazement.
The dynamos purred in the sub-basement,
the lifts rushed up and down. On all the
eleven floors of Nurseries it was feeding time.
From eighteen hundred bottles eighteen hundred carefully labelled
infants were simultaneously sucking down their pint of pasteurized external
secretion.
Above them, in ten successive layers of
dormitory, the little boys and girls who were still young enough to need an
afternoon sleep were as busy as everyone else, though they did not know it,
listening unconsciously to hypnopaedic lessons in hygiene and sociability, in
class-consciousness and the toddler's love-life. Above these again were the playrooms where,
the weather having turned to rain, nine hundred older children were amusing
themselves with bricks and clay modelling, hunt-the-slipper, and erotic play.
Buzz, buzz! the hive was humming busily,
joyfully. Blithe was the singing of the
young girls over their test-tubes, the Predestinators whistled as they worked,
and in the Decanting Room what glorious jokes were cracked above the empty
bottles! But the Director's face, as he
entered the Fertilizing Room with Henry Foster, was grave, wooden with
severity.
"A public example," he was
saying. "In this room, because it
contains more high-caste workers than any other in the Centre. I have told him to meet me here at half-past
two."
"He does his work very well,"
put in Henry, with hypocritical generosity.
"I know. But that's all the more reason for
severity. His intellectual eminence
carries with it corresponding moral responsibilities. The greater a man's talents, the greater his
power to lead astray. It is better than
one should suffer than that many should be corrupted. Consider the matter dispassionately, Mr
Foster, and you will see that no offence is so heinous as unorthodoxy of
behaviour. Murder kills only the
individual -and, after all, what is an individual?" With a sweeping gesture he indicated the rows
of microscopes, the test-tubes, the incubators.
"We can make a new one with the greatest ease - as many as we
like. Unorthodoxy threatens more than
the life of a mere individual; it strikes at Society itself. Yes, at Society itself," he repeated. "Ah, but here he comes."
Bernard had entered the room and was
advancing between the rows of fertilizers towards them. A veneer of jaunty self-confidence thinly
concealed his nervousness. The voice in
which he said "Good morning, Director," was absurdly too loud; that
in which, correcting his mistake, he said, "You asked me to come and speak
to you here," ridiculously soft, a squeak.
"Yes, Mr Marx," said the
Director portentously. "I did ask
you to come to me here. You returned
from your holiday last night, I understand."
"Yes," Bernard answered.
"Yes-s," repeated the Director,
lingering, a serpent, on the 's'. Then,
suddenly raising his voice, "Ladies and gentlemen," he trumpeted,
"ladies and gentlemen."
The singing of the girls over their
test-tubes, the preoccupied whistling of the Microscopists, suddenly
ceased. There was a profound silence;
everyone looked round.
"Ladies and gentlemen," the
Director repeated once more, "excuse me for thus interrupting your
labours. A painful duty constrains
me. The security and stability of
Society are in danger. Yes, in danger,
ladies and gentlemen. This man," he
pointed accusingly at Bernard, "this man who stands before you here, this
Alpha-Plus to whom so much has been given, and from whom, in consequence, so
much must be expected, this colleague of yours - or should I anticipate and say
this ex-colleague - has grossly betrayed the trust imposed in him. By his heretical views on sport and soma,
by the scandalous unorthodoxy of his sex-life, by his refusal to obey the
teachings of Our Ford and behave out of office hours 'like a babe in a
bottle'" (here the Director made the sign of the T), "he has proved
himself an enemy of Society, a subverter, ladies and gentlemen, of all Order
and Stability, a conspirator against Civilization itself. For this reason I propose to dismiss him, to
dismiss him with ignominy from the post he has held in this Centre; I propose
forthwith to apply for his transference to a Sub-Centre of the lowest order
and, that his punishment may serve the best interest of Society, as far as
possible removed from an important Centre of population. In Iceland he will have small opportunity to
lead others astray by his unfordly example." The Director paused; then, folding his arms,
he turned impressively to Bernard.
"Marx," he said, "can you show any reason why I should not
now execute the judgement imposed upon you?"
"Yes, I can," Bernard answered
in a very loud voice.
Somewhat taken aback, but still
majestically, "Then show it," said the Director.
"Certainly. But it's in the passage. One moment." Bernard hurried to the door and threw it
open. "Come in," he commanded,
and the reason came in and showed itself.
There was a gasp, a murmur of
astonishment and horror; a young girl screamed; standing on a chair to get a
better view, someone upset two test-tubes of spermatozoa. Bloated, sagging, and among those firm
youthful bodies, those undistorted faces, a strange and terrifying monster of
middle-agedness, Linda advanced into the room, coquettishly smiling her broken
and discoloured smile, and rolling as she walked, with what was meant to be a
voluptuous undulation, her enormous haunches.
Bernard walked beside her.
"There he is," he said,
pointing at the Director.
"Did you think I didn't recognize
him?" Linda asked indignantly; then, turning to the Director, "Of
course I knew you; Tomakin, I should have known you anywhere, among a
thousand. But perhaps you've forgotten
me. Don't you remember, Tomakin? Your Linda." She stood looking at him, her head on one
side, still smiling, but with a smile that became progressively, in face of the
Director's expression of petrified disgust, less and less self-confident, that
wavered and finally went out.
"Don't you remember, Tomakin?" she repeated in a voice that
trembled. Her eyes were anxious,
agonized. The blotched and sagging face
twitched grotesquely into the grimace of extreme grief. "Tomakin!" She held out her arms. Someone began to titter.
"What's the meaning," began the
Director, "of this monstrous ..."
"Tomakin!" She ran forward, her blanket trailing behind
her, threw her arms round his neck, hid her face on his chest.
A howl of laughter went up irrepressibly.
“... this monstrous practical joke,"
the Director shouted.
Red in the face, he tried to disengage
himself from her embrace. Desperately
she clung. "But I'm Linda, I'm
Linda." The laughter drowned her
voice. "You made me have a
baby," she screamed above the uproar.
There was a sudden and appalling hush; eyes floated uncomfortably, not
knowing where to look. The Director went
suddenly pale, stopped struggling and stood, his hands on her wrists, staring
down at her, horrified. "Yes, a
baby - and I was its mother." She
flung the obscenity like a challenge into the outraged silence; then, suddenly
breaking away from him, ashamed, ashamed, covered her face with her hands,
sobbing. "It wasn't my fault,
Tomakin. Because I always did my drill,
didn't I? Didn't I? Always ... I don't know how ... If you knew
how awful, Tomakin ... But he was a comfort to me, all the same." Turning towards the door, "John!"
she called. "John!"
He came in at once, paused for a moment
just inside the door, looked round, then soft on his moccasined feet strode
quickly across the room, fell on his knees in front of the Director, and said
in a clear voice: "My father!"
The word (for 'father' was not so much
obscene as - with its connotation of something at one remove from the
loathsomeness and moral-obliquity of child-bearing - merely gross, a
scatological rather than a pornographic impropriety), the comically smutty word
relieved what had become a quite intolerable tension. Laughter broke out, enormous, almost
hysterical, peal after peal, as though it would never stop. My father - and it was the Director! My father! Oh Ford, of Ford! That was really too good. The whooping and the roaring renewed
themselves, faces seemed on the point of disintegration, tears were
streaming. Six more test-tubes of
spermatozoa were upset. My father!
Pale, wild-eyes, the Director glared
about him in an agony of bewildered humiliation.
My father! The laughter, which had shown signs of dying
away, broke out again more loudly than ever.
He put his hands over his ears and rushed out of the room.
Chapter XI
After
the scene in the Fertilizing Room, all upper-caste London was wild to see this
delicious creature who had fallen on his knees before the Director of
Hatcheries and Conditioning - or rather the ex-Director, for the poor man had
resigned immediately afterwards and never set foot inside the Centre again -
had flopped down and called him (the joke was almost too good to be true!) 'my
father.' Linda, on the contrary, cut no
ice; nobody had the smallest desire to see Linda. To say one was a mother - that was past a
joke: it was an obscenity. Moreover, she
wasn't a real savage, had been hatched out of a bottle and conditioned like
anyone else: so couldn't have really quaint ideas. Finally - and this was by far the strongest
reason for people's not wanting to see poor Linda - there was her appearance. Fat; having lost her youth: with bad teeth,
and a blotched complexion, and that figure (Ford!) - you simply couldn't look
at her without feeling sick, yes, positively sick. So the best people were quite determined not
to see Linda. And Linda, for her part,
had no desire to see them. The return to
civilization was for her the return to soma, was the possibility of
lying in bed and taking holiday after holiday, without every having to come
back to a headache or a fit of vomiting, without ever being made to feel as you
always felt after peyotl, as though you'd done something so shamefully
anti-social that you could never hold up your head again. Soma played none of these unpleasant
tricks. The holiday it gave was perfect
and, if the morning after was disagreeable, it was so, not intrinsically, but
only by comparison with the joys of the holiday. The remedy was to make the holiday
continuous. Greedily she clamoured for
ever larger, ever more frequent doses.
Dr Shaw at first demurred; then let her have what she wanted. She took as much as twenty grammes a day.
"Which will finish her off in a
month or two," the doctor confided to Bernard. "One day the respiratory centre will be
paralysed. No more breathing. Finished.
And a good thing too. If we could
rejuvenate, of course it would be different.
But we can't."
Surprisingly, as everyone thought (for on
soma-holiday Linda was most conveniently out of the way), John raised
objections.
"But aren't you shortening her life
by giving her so much?"
"In one sense, yes," Dr Shaw
admitted. "But in another we're
actually lengthening it." The young
man stared, uncomprehending. "Soma
may make you lose a few years in time," the doctor went on. "But this of the enormous, immeasurable
durations it can give you out of time.
Every soma-holiday is a bit of what our ancestors used to call
eternity."
John began to understand. "Eternity was in our lips and
eyes," he murmured.
"Eh?"
"Nothing."
"Of course," Dr Shaw went on,
"you can't allow people to go popping off into eternity if they've got any
serious work to do. But as she hasn't
got any serious work ..."
"All the same," John persisted,
"I don't believe it's right."
The doctor shrugged his shoulders. "Well, of course, if you prefer to have
her screaming mad all the time ..."
In the end John was forced to give
in. Linda got her soma. Thenceforward she remained in her little room
on the thirty-seventh floor of Bernard's apartment house, in bed, with the
radio and television always on, and the patchouli tap just dripping, and the soma
tablets within reach of her hand - there she remained; and yet wasn't there at
all, was all the time away, infinitely far away, on holiday; on holiday in some
other world, where the music of the radio was a labyrinth of sonorous colours,
a sliding, palpitating labyrinth, that led (by what beautifully inevitable
windings) to a bright centre of absolute conviction; where the dancing images
of the television box were the performers in some indescribably delicious
all-singing feely; where the dripping patchouli was more than scent - was the
sun, was a million sexophones, was Popé making love, only much more so,
incomparably more, and without end.
"No, we can't rejuvenate. But I'm very glad," Dr Shaw had
concluded, "to have had this opportunity to see an example of senility in
a human being. Thank you so much for
calling me in." He shook Bernard
warmly by the hand.
It was John, then, they were all
after. And as it was only through
Bernard, his accredited guardian, that John could be seen, Bernard now found
himself, for the first time in his life, treated not merely normally, but as a
person of outstanding importance. There
was no more talk of the alcohol in his blood-surrogate, no gibes at his
personal appearance. Henry Foster went
out of his way to be friendly; Benito Hoover made him a present of six packets
of sex-hormone chewing-gum; the Assistant Predestinator came and cadged almost
abjectly for an invitation to one of Bernard's evening parties. As for the women, Bernard had only to hint at
the possibility of an invitation, and he could have whichever of them he liked.
"Bernard's asked me to meet the
Savage next Wednesday," Fanny announced triumphantly.
"I'm so glad," said
Lenina. "And now you must admit
that you were wrong about Bernard. Don't
you think he's really rather sweet?"
Fanny nodded. "And I must say," she said, "I
was quite agreeably surprised."
The Chief Bottler, the Director of
Predestination, three Deputy Assistant Fertilizer-Generals, the Professor of
Feelies in the College of Emotional Engineering, the Dean of the Westminster
Community Singery, the Supervisor of Bokanovskification - the list of Bernard's
notabilities was interminable.
"And I had six girls last week"
he confided to Helmholtz Watson.
"One on Monday, two on Tuesday, two more on Friday, and one on
Saturday. And if I'd had the time or the
inclination, there were at least a dozen more who were only too anxious
..."
Helmholtz listened to his boastings in a
silence so gloomily disapproving that Bernard was offended.
"You're envious," he said.
Helmholtz shook his head. "I'm rather sad, that's all," he
answered.
Bernard went off in a huff. Never, he told himself, never would he speak
to Helmholtz again.
The days passed. Success went fizzily to Bernard's head, and
in the process completely reconciled him (as any good intoxicant should do) to
a world which, up till then, he had found very unsatisfactory. In so far as it recognized him as important,
the order of things was good. But,
reconciled by his success, he yet
refused to forgo the privilege of criticizing this order. For the act of criticizing heightened his
sense of importance, made him feel larger.
Moreover, he did genuinely believe that there were things to
criticize. (At the same time, he
genuinely liked being a success and having all the girls he wanted.) Before those who now, for the sake of the
Savage, paid their court to him, Bernard would parade a carping
unorthodoxy. He was politely listened
to. But behind his back people shook
their heads. "That young man will
come to a bad end," they said, prophesying the more confidently in that
they themselves would in due course personally see to it that the end was
bad. "He won't find another Savage
to help him out a second time," they said.
Meanwhile, however, there was the first Savage; they were polite. And because they were polite, Bernard felt
positively gigantic - gigantic and at the same time light with elation, lighter
than air.
"Lighter than air," said
Bernard, pointing upwards.
Like a pearl in the sky, high above them,
the Weather Department's captive balloon shone rosily in the sunshine.
“... the said Savage," so ran
Bernard's instructions, "to be shown civilized life in all its aspects ...
"
He was being shown a bird's-eye view of
it at present, a bird's-eye view from the platform of the Charing T-Tower. The Station Master and the Resident
Meteorologist were acting as guides. But
it was Bernard who did most of the talking.
Intoxicated, he was behaving as though, at the very least, he were a
visiting World Controller. Lighter than
air.
The Bombay Green Rocket dropped out of
the sky. The passengers alighted. Eight identical Dravidian twins in khaki
looked out of the eight portholes of the cabin - the stewards.
"Twelve hundred and fifty kilometres
an hour," said the Station Master impressively. "What do you think of that, Mr
Savage?"
John thought it very nice. "Still," he said, "Ariel could
put a girdle round the earth in forty minutes."
"The Savage," wrote Bernard in
his report to Mustapha Mond, "shows surprisingly little astonishment at,
or awe of, civilized inventions. This is
partly due, no doubt, to the fact that he has heard them talked about by the
woman Linda, his m-."
(Mustapha Mond frowned. "Does the fool think I'm too squeamish
to see the word written out at full length?")
"Partly on his interest being
focused on what he calls 'the soul', which he persists as regarding as an
entity independent of the physical environment; whereas, as I tried to point
out to him ..."
The Controller skipped the next sentences
and was just about to turn the page in search of something more interestingly
concrete, when his eye was caught by a series of quite extraordinary
phrases. " ... thought I must
admit," he read, "that I agree with the Savage in finding civilized
infantility too easy or, as he puts it, not expensive enough; and I would like
to take this opportunity of drawing your fordship's attention to ..."
Mustapha Mond's anger gave place almost
at once to mirth. The idea of this
creature solemnly lecturing him - him - about the social order was
really too grotesque. The man must have
gone mad. "I ought to give him a
lesson," he said to himself; then threw back his head and laughed
aloud. For the moment, at any rate, the
lesson would not be given.
It was a small factory of lighting-sets
for helicopters, a branch of the Electrical Equipment Corporation. They were met on the roof itself (for that
circular letter of recommendation from the Controller was magical in its
effects) by the Chief Technician and the Human Element Manager. They walked downstairs into the factory.
"Each process," explained the
Human Element Manager, "is carried out, so far as possible, by a single
Bokanovsky Group."
And, in effect, eighty-three almost
noseless black brachycephalic Deltas were cold-pressing. The fifty-six four-spindle chucking and
turning machines were being manipulated by fifty-six aquiline and ginger
Gammas. One hundred and seven
heat-conditioned Epsilon Senegalese were working in the foundry. Thirty-three Delta females, long-headed,
sandy, with narrow pelvises, and all within 20 millimetres of 1 metre 69
centimetres tall, were cutting screws.
In the assembling room, the dynamos were being put together by two sets
of Gamma-plus dwarfs. The two low
work-tables faced one another; between them crawled the conveyor with its load
of separate parts; forty-seven blond heads were confronted by forty-seven brown
ones. Forty-seven snubs by forty-seven
hooks; forty-seven receding by forty-seven prognathous chins. The completed mechanisms were inspected by
eighteen identical curly auburn girls in Gamma green, packed in crates by
thirty-four short-legged, left-handed male Delta-Minuses, and loaded into the
waiting trucks and lorries by sixty-three blue-eyed, flaxen and freckled
Epsilon Semi-Morons.
"O brave new world ...” By some
malice of his memory the Savage found himself repeating Miranda's words. "O brave new world that has such people
in it."
"And I assure you," the Human Element
Manager concluded, as they left the factory, "we hardly ever have any
trouble with our workers. We always find
..."
But the Savage had suddenly broken away
from his companions and was violently retching, behind a clump of laurels, as
though the solid earth had been a helicopter in an air pocket.
"The Savage," wrote Bernard,
"refuses to take soma, and seems much distressed because the woman
Linda, his m-, remains permanently on holiday.
It is worthy of note, that, in spite of his m-'s senility and the
extreme repulsiveness of her appearance, the Savage frequently goes to see her
and appears to be much attached to her - an interesting example of the way in
which early conditioning can be made to modify and even run counter to natural
impulses (in this case, the impulse to recoil from an unpleasant object)."
At Eton they alighted on the roof of
Upper School. On the opposite side of
School Yard, the fifty-two stories of Lupton's Tower gleamed white in the
sunshine. College on their left and, on
their right, the School Community Singery reared their venerable piles of
ferro-concrete and vita-glass. In the
centre of the quadrangle stood the quaint old chrome-steel statues of Our Ford.
Dr Gaffney, the Provost, and Miss Keate,
the Head Mistress, received them as they stepped out of the plane.
"Do you have many twins here?"
the Savage asked rather apprehensively, as they set out on their tour of
inspection.
"Oh no," the Provost
answered. "Eton is reserved
exclusively for upper-caste boys and girls.
One egg, one adult. It makes
education more difficult, of course. But
as they'll be called upon to take responsibilities and deal with unexpected
emergencies, it can't be helped."
He sighed.
Bernard, meanwhile, had taken a strong
fancy to Miss Keate. "If you're
free any Monday, Wednesday, or Friday evening," he was saying. Jerking his thumb towards the Savage,
"He's curious, you know," Bernard added. "Quaint."
Miss Keate smiled (and her smile was
really charming, he thought); said Thank you; would be delighted to come to one
of his parties. The Provost opened a
door.
Five minutes in that Alpha-Double-Plus
classroom left John a trifle bewildered.
"What is elementary
relativity?" he whispered to Bernard.
Bernard tried to explain, then thought better of it and suggested that
they should go to some other classroom.
From behind a door in the corridor
leading to the Beta-Minus geography room, a ringing soprano voice called
"One, two, three, four," and then, with a weary impatience, "As
you were."
"Malthusian Drill," explained
the Head Mistress. "Most of our
girls are freemartins, of course. I'm a
freemartin myself." She smiled at
Bernard. "But we have about eight
hundred unsterilized ones who need constant drilling."
In the Beta-Minus geography room John
learnt that a savage reservation is a place which, owing to unfavourable
climatic or geological conditions, or poverty of natural resources, has not
been worth the expense of civilizing."
A click; the room was darkened; and suddenly, on the screen above the
Master's head, there wee the Penitentes of Acoma prostrating themselves
before Our Lady, and wailing as John had heard them wail, confessing their sins
before Jesus on the cross, before the eagle image of Pookong. The young Etonians fairly shouted with
laughter. Still wailing, the Penitentes
rose to their feet, stripped off their upper garments and, with knotted whips,
began to beat themselves, blow after blow.
Redoubled, the laughter drowned even the amplified record of their
groans.
"But why do they laugh?" asked
the Savage in a pained bewilderment.
"Why?" The Provost turned towards him a still
broadly grinning face. "Why? But because it's so extraordinarily
funny."
In the cinematographic twilight, Bernard
risked a gesture which, in the past, even total darkness would hardly have
emboldened him to make. Strong in his
new importance, he put his arm round the Head Mistress's waist. It yielded, willowily. He was just about to snatch a kiss or two and
perhaps a gentle pinch, when the shutters clicked open again.
"Perhaps we had better go on,"
said Miss Keate, and moved towards the door.
"And this," said the Provost a
moment later, "is the Hypnopaedic Control Room."
Hundreds of synthetic music boxes, one
for each dormitory, stood ranged in shelves round three sides of the room;
pigeon-holed on the fourth were the paper sound-track rolls on which the
various hypnopaedic lessons were printed.
"You slip the roll in here,"
explained Bernard, interrupting Dr Gaffney, "press down this switch
..."
"No, that one," corrected the
Provost, annoyed.
"That one, then. The roll unwinds. The selenium cells transform the light
impulses into sound waves, and ..."
"And there you are," Dr Gaffney
concluded.
"Do
they read Shakespeare?" asked the Savage as they walked, on their
way to the Biochemical Laboratories, past the School Library.
"Certainly not," said the Head
Mistress, blushing.
"Our library," said Dr Gaffney,
"contains only books of reference.
If our young people need distraction, they can get it at the
feelies. We don't encourage them to
indulge in any solitary amusements."
Five bus-loads of boys and girls, singing
or in a silent embracement, rolled past them over the vitrified highway.
"Just returned," explained Dr
Gaffney, while Bernard, whispering, made an appointment with the Head Mistress
for that very evening, "from the Slough Crematorium. Death conditioning begins at eighteen
months. Every tot spends two mornings a
week in a Hospital for the Dying. All
the best toys are kept there, and they get chocolate cream on death days. They learn to take dying as a matter of
course."
"Like any other physiological
process," put in the Head Mistress professionally.
Eight o'clock at the Savoy. It was all arranged.
On their way back to London they stopped
at the Television Corporation's factory at Brentford.
"Do you mind waiting here a moment
while I go and telephone?" asked Bernard.
The Savage waited and watched. The Main Day-Shift was just going off
duty. Crowds of lower-caste workers were
queued up in front of the monorail station - seven or eight hundred Gamma,
Delta and Epsilon men and women, with not more than a dozen faces and statures
between them. To each of them, with his
or her ticket, the booking clerk pushed over a little cardboard pill-box. The long caterpillar of men and women moved
slowly forward.
"What's in those" (remembering The
Merchant of Venice), "those caskets?" the Savage enquired when
Bernard had rejoined him.
"The day's soma ration,"
Bernard answered, rather indistinctly, for he was masticating a piece of Benito
Hoover's chewing-gum. "They get it
after their work's over. Four
half-gramme tablets. Six on
Saturdays."
He took Jim's arm affectionately and they
walked back towards the helicopter.
Lenina came singing into the Changing
Room.
"You see very pleased with
yourself," said Fanny.
"I am pleased," she
answered. Zip! "Bernard rang up half an hour
ago." Zip, zip! She stepped out of her shorts. "He has an unexpected
engagement." Zip! "Asked me if I'd take the Savage to the
feelies this evening. I must
fly." She hurried away towards the
bathroom.
"She's a lucky girl," Fanny
said to herself as she watched Lenina go.
There was no envy in the comment;
good-natured Fanny was merely stating a fact.
Lenina was lucky, lucky in having shared with Bernard a generous
portion of the Savage's immense celebrity, lucky in reflecting from her
insignificant person the moment's supremely fashionable glory. Had not the Secretary of the Young Women's
Fordian Association asked her to give a lecture about her experiences? Had she not been invited to the Annual Dinner
of the Aphroditaeum Club? Had she not
already appeared in the Feelytone News - visibly, audibly and tactually
appeared to countless millions all over the planet?
Hardly less flattering had been the
attentions paid her by conspicuous individuals.
The Resident World Controller's Second Secretary had asked her to dinner
and breakfast. She had spent one weekend
with the Ford Chief-Justice, and another with the Arch-Community Songster of
Canterbury. The President of the
Internal and External Secretions Corporation was perpetually on the phone, a
and she
had been to Deauville with the Deputy-Governor of the Bank of Europe.
"It's wonderful, of course. And yet in a way," she had confessed to
Fanny, "I feel as though I were getting something on false pretences. Because, of course, the first thing they all
want to know is what it's like to make love to a Savage. And I have to say I don't know." She shook her head. "Most of the men don't believe me, of
course. But it's true. I wish it weren't," she added sadly, and
sighed. "He's terribly
good-looking; don't you think so?"
"But doesn't he like you?"
asked Fanny.
"Sometimes I think he does and
sometimes I think he doesn't. He always
does his best to avoid me; goes out of the room when I come in; won't touch me;
won't even look at me. But sometimes if
I turn round suddenly, I catch him staring; and then - well, you know how men
look when they like you."
Yes, Fanny knew.
"I can't make it out," said
Lenina.
She couldn't make it out; and not only
was bewildered; was also rather upset.
"Because, you see, Fanny, I like
him."
Liked him more and more. Well, now there'd be a real chance, she
thought, as she scented herself after her bath.
Dab, dab, dab - a real chance.
Her high spirits overflowed in song.
"Hug
me till you drug me, honey;
Kiss
me till I'm in a coma:
Hug me, honey, snuggly bunny;
Love's
as good as soma."
The scent organ was playing a
delightfully refreshing Herbal Capriccio - rippling arpeggios of thyme and
lavender, of rosemary, basil, myrtle, tarragon; a series of daring modulations
through the spice keys into ambergris; and a slow return through sandalwood,
camphor, cedar and new-mown hay (with occasional subtle touches of discord - a
whiff of kidney pudding, the faintest suspicion of pig's dung) back to the
simple aromatics with which the piece began.
The final blast of thyme died away; there was a round of applause; the
lights went up. In the synthetic music
machine the soundtrack roll began to unwind.
It was a trio for hyper-violin, super-'cello and oboe-surrogate that now
filled the air with its agreeable languor.
Thirty or forty bars - and then, against this agreeable background, a
much more than human voice began to warble; now throaty, now from the head, now
hollow as a flute, now charged with yearning harmonics, it effortlessly passed
from Gaspard Foster's low record on the very frontiers of musical tone to a
trilled bat-note high above the highest C to which (in 1770, at the Ducal opera
of Parma, and to the astonishment of Mozart) Lucrezia Ajugari, alone of all the
singers of history, once piercingly gave utterance.
Sunk in their pneumatic stalls, Lenina
and the Savage sniffed and listened. It
was now the turn also for eyes and skin.
The house lights went down; fiery letters
stood out solid and as though self-supported in the darkness. THREE WEEKS
IN A HELICOPTER. AN ALL-SUPER SINGING, SYNTHETIC-TALKING, COLOURED, STEREOSCOPIC FEELY.
WITH SYNCHRONIZED SCENT-ORGAN
ACCOMPANIMENT.
"Take hold of those metal knobs on
the arms of your chair," whispered Lenina.
"Otherwise you won't get any of the feely effects."
The Savage did as he was told.
Those fiery letters, meanwhile, had
disappeared; there were ten seconds of complete darkness; then suddenly,
dazzling and incomparably more solid-looking than they would have seemed in
actual flesh and blood, far more real than reality, there stood the
stereoscopic images, locked in one another's arms, of a gigantic Negro and a
golden-haired young brachycephalic Beta-Plus female.
The Savage started. That sensation on his lips! He lifted a hand to his mouth; the
titillation ceased; let his hand fall back on the metal knob; it began
again. The scent organ, meanwhile,
breathed pure musk. Expiringly, a
soundtrack super-dove cooed "Oo-ooh"; and vibrating only thirty-two
times per second, a deeper than African bass made answer:
"Ah-aah." "Ooh-ah! Ooh-ah!" the stereoscopic lips came
together again, and once more the facial erogenous zones of the six thousand
spectators in the Alhambra tinged with almost intolerable galvanic pleasure. "Ooh ..."
The plot of the film was extremely
simple. A few minutes after the first
Ooh's and Aah's (a duet having been sung and a little love made on that famous
bearskin, every hair of which - the Assistant Predestinator was perfectly right
- could be separately and distinctly felt), the Negro had a helicopter
accident, fell on his head. Thump! what
a twinge through the forehead! A chorus
of ow's and aie's went up from the audience.
The concussion knocked all the Negro's
conditioning into a cocked hat. He
developed for the Beta blonde an exclusive and maniacal passion. She protested. He persisted.
There were struggles, pursuits, an assault on a rival, finally a
sensational kidnapping. The Beta blonde
was ravished away into the sky and kept there, however, for three weeks in a
wildly anti-social tęte-ŕ-tęte with the black madman. Finally, after a whole series of adventures
and much aerial arobacy, three handsome young Alphas succeeded in rescuing
her. The Negro was packed off to an
Adult Re-conditioning Centre and the film ended happily and decorously, with
the Beta blonde becoming the mistress of all her three rescuers. They interrupted themselves for a moment to
sing a synthetic quartet, with full super-orchestral accompaniment and gardenias
on the scent organ. Then the bearskin
made a final appearance and, amid a blare of sexophones, the last stereoscopic
kiss faded into darkness, the last electric titillation died on the lips like a
dying moth that quivers, quivers ever more feebly, ever more faintly, and at
last is quite, quite still.
But for Lenina the moth did not
completely die. Even after the lights
had gone up, while they were shuffling slowly along with the crowd towards the
lifts, its ghost still fluttered against her lips, still traced fine shuddering
roads of anxiety and pleasure across the skin.
Her cheeks were flushed, her eyes dewily bright, her breath came
deeply. She caught hold of the Savage's
arm and pressed it, limp, against her side.
He looked down at her for a moment, pale, pained, desiring, and ashamed
of his desire. He was not worthy, not
... Their eyes for a moment met. What
treasures hers promised! A queen's
ransom of temperament. Hastily he looked
away, disengaged his imprisoned arm. He
was obscurely terrified lest she should cease to be something he could feel
himself unworthy of.
"I don't think you ought to see
things like that," he said, making haste to transfer from Lenina herself
to the surrounding circumstances the blame for any past or possible future
lapse from perfection.
"Things like what, John?"
"Like this horrible film."
"Horrible?" Lenina was genuinely astonished. "But I thought it was lovely."
"It was base," he said
indignantly, "it was ignoble."
She shook her head. "I don't know what you mean." Why was he so queer? Why did he go out of his way to spoil things?
In the taxicopter he hardly even looked
at her. Bound by strong vows that had
never been pronounced, obedient to laws that had long since ceased to run, he
sat averted and in silence. Sometimes,
as though a finger had plucked at some taut, almost breaking string, his whole
body would shake with a sudden nervous start.
The taxicopter landed on the roof of
Lenina's apartment house. "At
last," she thought exultantly as she stepped out of the cab. At last - even though he had been so
queer just now. Standing under a lamp,
she peered into her hand-mirror. At
last. Yes, her nose was a bit
shiny. She shook the loose powder from
her puff. While he was paying off the
taxi - there would just be time. She
rubbed at the shininess, thinking: "He's terribly good-looking. No need for him to be shy like Bernard. And yet ... Any other man would have done it
long ago. Well, now at last." That fragment of a face in the little round
mirror suddenly smiled at her.
"Good night," said a strangled
voice behind her. Lenina wheeled
round. He was standing in the doorway of
the cab, his eyes fixed, staring; had evidently been staring all this time
while she was powdering her nose, waiting - but what for? or hesitating, trying
to make up his mind, and all the time thinking, thinking - she could not
imagine what extraordinary thoughts.
"Good night, Lenina," he repeated, and made a strange
grimacing attempt to smile.
"But, John ... I thought you were
... I mean, aren't you ...?"
He shut the door and bent forward to say
something to the driver. The cab shot up
into the air.
Looking down through the window in the
floor, the Savage could see Lenina's upturned face, pale in the bluish light of
the lamps. The mouth was open, she was
calling. Her foreshortened figure rushed
away from him; the diminishing square of the roof seemed to be falling through
the darkness.
Five minutes later he was back in his
room. From its hiding-place he took out
his mouse-nibbled volume, turned with religious care its stained and crumpled
pages, and began to read Othello.
Othello, he remembered, was like the hero of Three Weeks in a
Helicopter - a black man.
Drying her eyes, Lenina walked across the
roof to the lift. On her way down to the
twenty-seventh floor she pulled out her soma bottle. One gramme, she decided, would not be enough;
hers had been more than a one-gramme affliction. But if she took two grammes, she ran the risk
of not waking up in time tomorrow morning.
She compromised and, into her cupped left palm, shook out three
half-gramme tablets.
Chapter XII
Bernard
had to shout through the locked door; the Savage would not open.
"But everybody's there, waiting for
you."
"Let them wait," came back the
muffled voice through the door.
"But you know quite well, John"
(how difficult it is to sound persuasive at the top of one's voice!), "I
asked them on purpose to meet you."
"You ought to have asked me
first whether I wanted to meet them."
"But you always came before,
John."
"That's precisely why I don't want
to come again."
"Just to please me," Bernard
bellowingly wheedled. "Won't you
come to please me?"
"No."
"Do you seriously mean it?"
"Yes."
Despairingly, "But what shall I
do?" Bernard wailed.
"Go to hell!" bawled the
exasperated voice from within.
"But the Arch-Community Songster of
Canterbury is there tonight."
Bernard was almost in tears.
"Ai yaa tákwa!" It was only in Zuńi that the Savage could
adequately express what he felt about the Arch-Community Songster. "Háni!" he added as an
afterthought; and then (with what derisive ferocity!): "Sons éso
tse-ná." And he spat on the
ground, as Popé might have done.
In the end Bernard had to slink back, diminished,
to his rooms and inform the impatient assembly that the Savage would not be
appearing that evening. The news was
received with indignation. The men were
furious at having been tricked into behaving politely to this insignificant
fellow with the unsavoury reputation and the heretical opinions. The higher their position in the hierarchy,
the deeper their resentment.
"To play such a joke on me,"
the Arch-Songster kept repeating, "on me!"
As for the women, they indignantly felt
that they had been had on false pretences - had by a wretched little man who
had had alcohol poured into his bottle by mistake - by a creature with a
Gamma-Minus physique. It was an outrage,
and they said so, more and more loudly.
The Head Mistress of Eton was particularly scathing.
Lenina alone said nothing. Pale, her blue eyes clouded with an unwonted
melancholy, she sat in a corner, cut off from those who surrounded her by an
emotion which they did not share. She
had come to the party filled with a strange feeling of anxious exultation. "In a few minutes," she had said to
herself, as she entered the room, "I shall be seeing him, talking to him,
telling him" (for she had come with her mind made up) "that I like
him - more than anybody I've ever known.
And then perhaps he'll say ..."
What would he say? The blood had rushed to her cheeks.
"Why was he so strange the other
night, after the feelies? So queer. And yet I'm absolutely sure he really does
rather like me. I'm sure ..."
It was at this moment that Bernard had
made his announcement; the Savage wasn't coming to the party.
Lenina suddenly felt all the sensations
normally experienced at the beginning of a Violent Passion Surrogate treatment
- a sense of dreadful emptiness, a breathless apprehension, a nausea. Her heart seemed to stop beating.
"Perhaps it's because he doesn't
like me," she said to herself. And
at once this possibility became an established certainty: John had refused to
come because he didn't like her. He
didn't like her ...
"It really is a bit too thick,"
the Head Mistress of Eton was saying to the Director of Crematoria and
Phosphorus Reclamation. "When I
think that I actually ..."
"Yes," came the voice of Fanny
Crowne, "it's absolutely true about the alcohol. Someone I know knew someone who was working
in the Embryo store at the time. She
said to my friend, and my friend said to me ..."
"Too bad, too bad," said Henry
Foster, sympathizing with the Arch-Community Songster. "It may interest you to know that our
ex-Director was on the point of transferring him to Iceland."
Pierced by every word that was spoken,
the tight balloon of Bernard's happy self-confidence was leaking from a
thousand wounds. Pale, distraught,
abject and agitated, he moved among his guests, stammering incoherent apologies,
assuring them that the next time the Savage would certainly be there, begging
them to sit down and take a carotine sandwich, a slice of vitamin A pâté,
a glass of champagne-surrogate. They
duly ate, but ignored him; drank and were either rude to his face or talked to
one another about him, loudly and offensively as though he had not been there.
"And now, my friends," said the
Arch-Community Songster of Canterbury, in that beautiful ringing voice with
which he led the proceedings at Ford's Day Celebrations, "Now, my friends,
I think perhaps the time has come ..."
He rose, put down his glass, brushed from his purple viscose waistcoat
the crumbs of a considerable collation, and walked towards the door.
Bernard darted forward to intercept him.
"Must you really, Arch-Songster? ...
It's very early still. I'd hoped you
would ..."
Yes, what hadn't he hoped, when Lenina
confidentially told him that the Arch-Community Songster would accept an
invitation if it were sent. "He's
really rather sweet, you know." And
she had shown Bernard the little golden zipper-fastening in the form of a T
which the Arch-Songster had given her as a momento of the weekend she had spent
at the Diocesan Singery. To meet the
Arch-Community Songster of Canterbury and Mr Savage. Bernard had proclaimed his triumph on every
invitation card. But the Savage had
chosen this evening of all evenings to lock himself up in his room, to shout "Háni!" and even (it was lucky that Bernard didn't
understand Zuńi) "Sons éso tse-ná." What should have been the crowning moment of
Bernard's whole career had turned out to be the moment of his greatest
humiliation.
"I'd so much hoped ..." he
stammeringly repeated, looking up at the great dignitary with pleading and
distracted eyes.
"My young friend," said the
Arch-Community Songster in a tone of loud and solemnly severity; there was a
general silence. "Let me give you a
word of advice." He wagged his finger
at Bernard. "Before it's too
late. A word of good advice." (His voice became sepulchral.) "Mend your ways, my young friend, mend
your ways." He made the sign of the
T over him and turned away.
"Lenina, my dear," he called in another tone. "Come with me."
Obediently, but unsmiling and (wholly
insensible of the honour done to her) without elation, Lenina walked after him,
out of the room. The other guests
followed at a respectful interval. The
last of them slammed the door. Bernard
was all alone.
Punctured, utterly deflated, he dropped
into a chair and, covering his face with his hands, began to weep. A few minutes later, however, he thought
better of it and took four tablets of soma.
Upstairs in his
room the Savage was reading Romeo and Juliet.
Lenina and the Arch-Community Songster
stepped out on to the roof of the Singery.
"Hurry up, my young friend - I mean, Lenina," called the
Arch-Songster impatiently from the lift gates.
Lenina, who had lingered for a moment to look at the moon, dropped her
eyes and came hurrying across the roof to rejoin him.
'A New Theory of Biology' was the title
of the paper which Mustapha Mond had just finished reading. He sat for some time, meditatively frowning,
then picked up his pen and wrote across the title-page. 'The author's mathematical treatment of the
conception of purpose is novel and highly ingenious, but heretical and, so far
as the present social order is concerned, dangerous and potentially
subversive. Not to be published.' He underlined the words. 'The author will be kept under
supervision. His transference to the
Marine Biological Station of St Helena may become necessary.' A pity, he thought, as he signed his
name. It was a masterly piece of
work. But once you began admitting
explanations in terms of purpose - well, you didn't know what the result might
be. It was the sort of idea that might
easily decondition the more unsettled minds among the higher castes - make them
lose their faith in happiness as the Sovereign Good and take to believing,
instead, that the goal was somewhere beyond, somewhere outside the present human
sphere; that the purpose of life was not the maintenance of wellbeing, but some
intensification and refining of consciousness, some enlargement of
knowledge. Which was, the Controller
reflected, quite possibly true. But not,
in the present circumstances, admissible.
He picked up his pen again and under the words 'Not to be published' drew
a second line, thicker and blacker than the first; then sighed. "What fun it would be," he thought,
"if one didn't have to think about happiness!"
With closed eyes, his face shining with
rapture, John was softly declaiming to vacancy:
"O, she
doth teach the torched to burn bright!
It seems she hangs upon the cheek of night
Like a rich jewel in an Ethiop's ears;
Beauty too rich for use, for earth too dear
..."
The golden T lay shining on Lenina's
bosom. Sportively, the Arch-Community
Songster caught hold of it, sportively he pulled, pulled. "I think," said Lenina suddenly, breaking
a long silence, "I'd better take a couple of grammes of soma.
Bernard, by this time, was fast asleep
and smiling at the private paradise of his dreams. Smiling, smiling. But inexorably, every thirty seconds, the
minute hand of the electric clock above his bed jumped forward with an almost
imperceptible click. Click, click,
click, click ... And it was
morning. Bernard was back among the
miseries of space and time. It was in
the lowest spirits that he taxied across to his work at the Conditioning
Centre. The intoxication of success had
evaporated; he was soberly his old self; and by contrast with the temporary
balloon of these last weeks, the old self seemed unprecedentedly heavier than
the surrounding atmosphere.
To this deflated Bernard the Savage
showed himself unexpected sympathetic.
"You're more like what you were at
Malpais," he said, when Bernard had told him his plaintive story. "Do you remember when we first talked
together? Outside the little house. You're like what you were then."
"Because I'm unhappy again; that's
why."
"Well, I'd rather be unhappy than
have the sort of false, lying happiness you were having here."
"I like that," said Bernard
bitterly. "When it's you who were
the cause of it all. Refusing to come to
my party and so turning them all against me!" He knew that what he was saying was absurd in
its injustice; he admitted inwardly, and at last even aloud, the truth of all
that the Savage now said about the worthlessness of friends who could be turned
upon so slight a provocation into persecuting enemies. But in spite of this knowledge and these
admissions, in spite of the fact that his friend's support and sympathy were
now his only comfort, Bernard continued perversely to nourish, along with his
quite genuine affection, a secret grievance against the Savage, to meditate a
campaign of small revenges to be wreaked upon him. Nourishing a grievance against the
Arch-Community Songster was useless; there was no possibility of being revenged
on the Chief Bottler or the Assistant Predestinator. As a victim, the Savage possessed, for
Bernard, this enormous superiority over the others; that he was
accessible. One of the principal
functions of a friend is to suffer (in a milder and symbolic form) the
punishments that we should like, but are unable, to inflict upon our
enemies.
Bernard's other victim-friend was
Helmholtz. When, discomfited, he came
and asked once more for the friendship which in his prosperity he had not
thought it worth his while to preserve, Helmholtz gave it; and gave it without
a reproach, without a comment, as though he had forgotten that there had ever
been a quarrel. Touched, Bernard felt at
the same time humiliated by this magnanimity - a magnanimity the more
extraordinary and therefore the more humiliating in that it owed nothing to soma
and everything to Helmholtz's character.
It was the Helmholtz of daily life who forgot and forgave, not the
Helmholtz of a half-gramme holiday.
Bernard was duly grateful (it was an enormous comfort to have his friend
again) and also duly resentful (it would be a pleasure to take some revenge on
Helmholtz for his generosity).
At the first meeting after the
estrangement, Bernard poured out the tale of his miseries and accepted
consolation. It was not till some days later
that he learned, to his surprise and with a twinge of shame, that he was not
the only one who had been in trouble.
Helmholtz had also come into conflict with Authority.
"It was over some rhymes," he
explained. "I was giving my usual
course of Advanced Emotional Engineering for Third Year Students. Twelve lectures, of which the seventh is
about rhymes. 'On the Use of Rhymes in Moral Propaganda and Advertisement,' to
be precise. I always illustrate my
lecture with a lot of technical examples.
This time I thought I'd given them one I'd just written myself. Pure madness, of course; but I couldn't
resist it." He laughed. "I was curious to see what their
reactions would be. Besides," he
added more gravely, "I wanted to do a bit of propaganda; I was trying to
engineer them into feeling as I'd felt when I wrote the rhymes. Ford!"
He laughed again. "What an
outcry there was! The Principal had me
up and threatened to hand me the immediate sack. I'm a marked man."
"But what were your rhymes?"
Bernard asked.
"They were about being alone."
Bernard's eyebrows went up.
"I'll recite them to you, if you
like." And Helmholtz began:
"Yesterday's
committee,
Sticks, but a broken drum,
Midnight in the City,
Flutes in a vacuum
Shut lips, sleeping faces,
Every stopped machine,
The dumb and littered places
Where crowds have been -
All silences rejoice,
Weep (loudly or low),
Speak - but with the voice
Of whom, I do not know.
Absence, say, of Susan's
Absence of Egeria's
Arms and respective bosoms,
Lips and, ah, posteriors,
Slowly form a presence;
Whose? and, I ask, of what
So absurd an essence,
That something, which is not,
Nevertheless should populate
Empty night more solidly
Than that with which we copulate,
Why should it seem so squalidly?
Well, I
gave them that as an example, and they reported me to the Principal."
"I'm not surprised," said
Bernard. "It's flatly against all
their sleep-teaching. Remember, they've
had at least a quarter of a million warnings against solitude."
"I know. But I thought I'd like to see what the effect
would be."
"Well, you've seen now."
Helmholtz only laughed. "I feel," he said, after a silence,
"as though I were only just beginning to have something to write
about. As though I were beginning to be
able to use that power I feel I've got inside me - that extra, latent
power. Something seems to be coming to
me." In spite of all his troubles,
he seemed, Bernard thought, profoundly happy.
Helmholtz and the Savage took to one
another at once. So cordially indeed
that Bernard felt a sharp pang of jealousy.
In all these weeks he had never come to so close an intimacy with the Savage
as Helmholtz immediately achieved.
Watching them, listening to their talk, he found himself sometimes
resentfully wishing that he had never brought them together. He was ashamed of his jealousy and
alternately made efforts of will and took soma to keep himself from
feeling it. But the efforts were not
very successful; and between the soma-holidays there were, of necessity,
intervals. The odious sentiment kept on
returning.
At his third meeting with the Savage,
Helmholtz recited his rhymes on Solitude.
"What do you think of them?" he
asked when he had done.
The Savage shook his head. "Listen to this," was his
answer; and unlocking the drawer in which he kept his mouse-eaten book, he
opened and read:
"Let
the bird of loudest lay,
On the sole Arabian tree,
Herald sad and trumpet be ..."
Helmholtz listened with a growing
excitement. At 'sole Arabian tree' he
started; at 'thou shrieking harbinger' he smiled with sudden pleasure; at
'every fowl of tyrant wing' the blood rushed up into his cheeks; but at
'defunctive music' he turned pale and trembled with an unprecedented
emotion. The Savage read on:
"Property
was thus appall'd,
That the self was not the same;
Single nature's double name
Neither two nor one was call'd.
Reason in itself confounded
Saw division grow together ..."
"Orgy-porgy!" said Bernard,
interrupting the reading with a loud, unpleasant laugh. "It's just a Solidarity Service
hymn." He was revenging himself on
his two friends for liking one another more than they liked him.
In the course of their next two or three
meetings he frequently repeated this little act of vengeance. It was simple and, since both Helmholtz and
the Savage were dreadfully pained by the shattering and defilement of a
favourite poetic crystal, extremely effective.
In the end, Helmholtz threatened to kick him out of the room if he dared
to interrupt again. And yet, strangely
enough, the next interruption, the most disgraceful of all, came from Helmholtz
himself.
The Savage was reading Romeo and
Juliet aloud - reading (for all the time he was seeing himself as Romeo and
Lenina as Juliet) with an intense and quivering passion. Helmholtz had listened to the scene of the
lovers' first meeting with a puzzled interest.
The scene in the orchard had delighted him with its poetry; but the
sentiments expressed had made him smile.
Getting into such a state about having a girl - it seemed rather
ridiculous. But, taken detail by verbal
detail, what a superb piece of emotional engineering! "That old fellow," he said,
"he makes our best propaganda technicians look absolutely
silly." The Savage smiled
triumphantly and resumed his reading.
All went tolerably well until, in the last scene of the third act,
Capulet and Lady Capulet began to bully Juliet to marry Paris. Helmholtz had been restless throughout the
entire scene; but when, pathetically mimed by the Savage, Juliet cried out:
"Is there
no pity sitting in the clouds,
That sees into the bottom of my grief?
O, sweet my mother, cast me not away!
Delay this marriage for a month, a week;
Or, if you do not, make the bridal bed
In that dim monument where Tybalt lies
..."
when
Juliet said this, Helmholtz broke out in an explosion of uncontrollable
guffawing.
The mother and father (grotesque
obscenity) forcing the daughter to have someone she didn't want! And the idiotic girl not saying that she was
having someone else whom (for the moment, at any rate) she preferred! In its smutty absurdity the situation was
irresistibly comical. He had managed,
with a heroic effort, to hold down the mounting pressure of his hilarity; but
'sweet mother' (in the Savage's tremulous tone of anguish) and the reference to
Tybalt lying dead, but evidently uncremated and wasting his phosphorus on a dim
monument, were too much for him. He
laughed and laughed till the tears streamed down his face - quenchlessly
laughed while, pale with a sense of outrage, the Savage looked at him over the
top of his book and then, as the laughter still continued, closed it
indignantly, got up and, with the gesture of one who removes his pearl from
before swine, locked it away in its drawer.
"And yet," said Helmholtz when,
having recovered breath enough to apologize, he had mollified the Savage into
listening to his explanations, "I know quite well that one needs
ridiculous, mad situations like that; one can't write really well about
anything else. Why was that old fellow
such a marvellous propaganda technician?
Because he had so many insane, excruciating things to get excited
about. You've got to be hurt and upset;
otherwise you can't think of the really good, penetrating, X-rayish
phrases. But fathers and
mothers!" He shook his head. "You can't expect me to keep a straight
face about fathers and mothers. And
who's going to get excited about a boy having a girl or not having
her?" (The Savage winced; but
Helmholtz, who was staring pensively at the floor, saw nothing.) "No," he concluded, with a sigh,
"it won't do. We need some other
kind of madness and violence. But
what? What? Where can one find it?" He was silent; then, shaking his head,
"I don't know," he said at last, "I don't know."
Chapter XIII
Henry
Foster loomed up through the twilight of the Embryo Store.
"Like to come to a feely this
evening?"
Lenina shook her head without speaking.
"Going out with someone else?" It interested him to know which of his
friends was being had by which other.
"Is it Benito?" he questioned.
She shook her head again.
Henry detected the weariness in those
purple eyes, the pallor beneath that glaze of lupus, the sadness at the corners
of the unsmiling crimson mouth.
"You're not feeling ill, are you?" he asked, a trifle
anxiously, afraid that she might be suffering from one of the few remaining
infectious diseases.
Yet once more Lenina shook her head.
"Anyhow, you ought to go and see the
doctor," said Henry. "A doctor
a day keeps the jim-jams away," he added heartily, driving home his
hypnopaedic adage with a clap on the shoulder.
"Perhaps you need a Pregnancy Substitute," he suggested. "Or else an extra strong V.P.S.
treatment. Sometimes, you know, the
standard passion-surrogate isn't quite ..."
"Oh, for Ford's sake," said
Lenina, breaking her stubborn silence, "shut up!" And she turned back to her neglected embryos.
A V.P.S. treatment indeed!" She would have laughed, if she hadn't been on
the point of crying. As though she
hadn't got enough V.P. of her own! She
sighed profoundly as she refilled her syringe.
"John," she murmured to herself, "John ...” Then,
"My Ford," she wondered, "have I given this one its
sleeping-sickness injection, or haven't I?" She simply couldn't remember. In the end, she decided not to run the risk
of letting it have a second dose, and moved down the line to the next bottle.
Twenty-two years eight months and four
days from that moment, a promising young Alpha-Minus administrator at
Mwanza-Mwanza was to die of trypanosomiasis - the first case for over half a
century. Sighing, Lenina went on with
her work.
An hour later, in the Changing Room,
Fanny was energetically protesting.
"Butt it's absurd to let yourself get into a state like this. Simply absurd," she repeated. And what about? A man - one man."
"But he's the one I want."
"As though there weren't millions of
other men in the world."
But I don't want them."
"How can you know till you've
tried?"
"I have tried."
"But how many?" asked Fanny,
shrugging her shoulders contemptuously.
"One, two?"
"Dozens. But," shaking her head, "it wasn't
any good," she added.
"Well, you must persevere,"
said Fanny sententiously. But it was
obvious that her confidence in her own prescriptions had been shaken. "Nothing can be achieved without
perseverance."
"But meanwhile ..."
"Don't think of him."
"I can't help it."
"Take soma, then."
"I do."
"Well, go on."
"But in the intervals I still like
him. I shall always like him."
"Well, if that's the case,"
said Fanny, with decision, "why don't you just go and take him. Whether he wants it or no."
"But if you knew how terribly queer
he was!"
"All the more reason for taking a
firm line."
"It's all very well to say
that."
"Don't stand any nonsense. Act."
Fanny's voice was a trumpet; she might have been a Y.W.F.A. lecturer
giving an evening talk to adolescent Beta-Minuses. "Yes, act - at once. Do it now."
"I'd be scared," said Lenina.
"Well, you've only got to take half
a gramme of soma first. And now
I'm going to have my bath." She
marched off, trailing her towel.
The bell rang, and the Savage, who was
impatiently hoping that Helmholtz would come that afternoon (for having at last
made up his mind to talk to Helmholtz about Lenina, he could not bear to
postpone his confidences a moment longer), jumped up and ran to the door.
"I had a premonition it was you,
Helmholtz," he shouted as he opened.
On the threshold, in a white
acetate-satin sailor suit, and with a round white cap rakishly tilted over her
left ear, stood Lenina.
"Oh!" said the Savage, as
though someone had struck him a heavy blow.
Half a gramme had been enough to make
Lenina forget her fears and her embarrassments.
"Hello, John," she said, smiling, and walked past him into the
room. Automatically he closed the door
and followed her. Lenina sat down. There was a long silence.
"You don't seem very glad to see me,
John," she said at last.
"Not glad?" The Savage looked at her reproachfully; then
suddenly fell on his knees before her and, taking Lenina's hand, reverently
kissed it. "Not glad? Oh, if you only knew," he whispered,
and, venturing to raise his eyes to her face, "Admired Lenina," he
went on, "indeed the top of admiration, worth what's dearest in the
world." She smiled at him with a
luscious tenderness. "Oh, you so perfect" (she was leaning towards
him with parted lips), "so perfect and so peerless are created"
(nearer and nearer) "of every creature's best." Still nearer.
The Savage suddenly scrambled to his feet. "That's why," he said, speaking
with averted face, "I wanted to do something first ... I mean, to
show I was worthy of you. Not that I
could ever really be that. But at any
rate to show I wasn't absolutely unworthy. I wanted to do something."
"Why should you think it necessary
..." Lenina began, but left the sentence unfinished. There was a note of irritation in her
voice. When one has leant forward, nearer
and nearer, with parted lips - only to find oneself, quite suddenly, as a
clumsy oaf scrambles to his feet, leaning towards nothing at all - well, there
is a reason, even with half a gramme of soma circulating in one's
bloodstream, a genuine reason for annoyance.
"At Malpais," the Savage was
incoherently mumbling, "you had to bring her the skin of a mountain lion -
I mean, when you wanted to marry someone.
Or else a wolf."
"There aren't any lions in
England," Lenina almost snapped.
"And even if there were," the
Savage added, with sudden contemptuous resentment, "people would kill them
out of helicopters, I suppose, with poison gas or something. I wouldn't do that, Lenina." He squared his shoulders, he ventured to look
at her and was met with a stare of annoyed incomprehension. Confused, "I'll do anything," he
went on, more and more incoherently.
"Anything you tell me. There
be some sports are painful - you know.
But their labour delight in them sets off. That's what I feel. I mean, I'd sweep the floor if you
wanted."
"But we've got vacuum cleaners
here," said Lenina in bewilderment.
"It isn't necessary."
"No, of course it isn't necessary. But some kinds of baseness are nobly
undergone. I'd like to undergo something
nobly. Don't you see?"
"But if there are vacuum
cleaners ..."
"That's not the point."
"And Epsilon Semi-Morons to work
them," she went on, "well, really, why?"
"Why? But
for you, for you. Just to
show that I ..."
"And what on earth vacuum cleaners
have got to do with lions ..."
"To show how much ..."
"Or lions with being glad to see me
...” She was getting more and more exasperated.
"How much I love you, Lenina,"
he brought out almost desperately.
An emblem of the inner tide of startled
elation, the blood rushed up into Lenina's cheeks. "Do you mean it, John?"
"But I hadn't meant to say so,"
cried the Savage, clasping his hands in a kind of agony. "Not until ... Listen, Lenina; in
Malpais people get married."
"Get what?" The irritation had begun to creep back into
her voice. What was he talking about
now?
"For always. They make a promise to live together for
always."
"What a horrible idea!" Lenina was genuinely shocked.
"Outliving beauty's outward, with a
mind that doth renew swifter than blood decays."
"What?"
"It's like that in Shakespeare
too. 'If thus dost break her virgin knot
before all sanctimonious ceremonies may with full and holy rite ...'"
"For Ford's sake, John, talk
sense. I can't understand a word you
say. First it's vacuum cleaners; then
it's knots. You're driving me
crazy." She jumped up and, as
though afraid that he might run away from her physically, as well as with his
mind, caught him by the wrist.
"Answer me this question: do you really like me, or don't
you?"
There was a moment's silence; then, in a
very low voice, "I love you more than anything in the world," he
said.
"Then why on earth didn't you say
so?" she cried, and so intense was her exasperation that she drove her
sharp nails into the skin of his wrist.
"Instead of drivelling away about knots and vacuum cleaners and
lions, and making me miserable for weeks and weeks."
She released his hand and flung it
angrily away from her. "If I didn't
like you so much," she said "I'd be furious with you."
And suddenly her arms were round his neck;
he felt her lips soft against his own.
So deliciously soft, so warm and electric that inevitably he found
himself thinking of the embraces in Three Weeks in a Helicopter. Ooh!
ooh! the stereoscopic blonde and aah! the more than real
blackamoor. Horror, horror, horror ...
he tried to disengage himself; but Lenina tightened her embrace.
"Why didn't you say so?" she
whispered, drawing back her face to look at him. Her eyes were tenderly reproachful.
"The murkiest den, the most
opportune place' (the voice of conscience thundered poetically), "the
strongest suggestion our worser genius can, shall never melt mine honour into
lust. Never, never!" he resolved.
"You silly boy!" she was
saying. "I wanted you so much. And if you wanted me too, why didn't you
...?"
"But, Lenina ..." he began
protesting; and as she immediately untwined her arms, as she stepped away from
him, he thought, for a moment, that she had taken his unspoken hint. But when she unbuckled her white patent
cartridge belt and hung it carefully over the back of a chair, he began to
suspect that he had been mistaken.
"Lenina!" he repeated
apprehensively.
She put her hand to her neck and gave a
long vertical pull; her white sailor's blouse was ripped to the hem; suspicion
condensed into a too, too solid certainty.
"Lenina, what are you doing?"
Zip, zip!
Her answer was wordless. She
stepped out of her bell-bottomed trousers.
Her zippicamiknicks were a pale shell pink. The Arch-Community Songster's Golden T
dangled at her breast.
"For those milk paps that through
the window bars bore at men's eyes ..."
The singing, thundering, magical words made her seem doubly dangerous,
doubly alluring. Soft, soft, but how
piercing! boring and drilling into reason, tunnelling through resolution. "The strongest oaths are straw to the
fire i' the blood. Be more abstemious, or else ..."
Zip!
The rounded pinkness fell apart like a neatly divided apple. A wriggle of the arms, a lifting first of the
right foot, then the left: the zippicamiknicks were lying lifeless and as
though deflated on the floor.
Still wearing her shoes and socks, and
her rakishly tilted round white cap, she advanced towards him. "Darling. Darling! If only you'd said so before!" She held out her arms.
But instead of also saying
"Darling!" and holding out his arms, the Savage retreated in
terror, flapping his hands at her as though he were trying to scare away some
intruding and dangerous animal. Four
backward steps, and he was brought to bay against the wall.
"Sweet!" said Lenina and,
laying her hands on his shoulders, pressed herself against him. "Put your arms round me," she
commanded. "Hug me till you drug
me, honey." She too had poetry at
her command, knew words that sang and were spells and beat drums. "Kiss me"; she closed her eyes, she
let her voice sink to a sleepy murmur, "kiss me till I'm in a coma. Hug me, honey, snuggly ..."
The Savage caught her by the wrists, tore
her hands from his shoulders, thrust her roughly away at arm's length.
"Ow, you're hurting me, you're ...
oh!" She was suddenly silent. Terror had made her forget the pain. Opening her eyes, she had seen his face - no,
not his face, a ferocious stranger's, pale, distorted, twitching with
some insane, inexplicable fury. Aghast,
"But what is it, John?" she whispered. He did not answer, but only stared into her
face with those mad eyes. The hands that
held her wrists were trembling. He
breathed deeply and irregularly. Faint
almost to imperceptibility, but appalling, she suddenly heard the grinding of
his teeth. "What is it?" she
almost screamed.
And as though awakened by her cry he
caught her by the shoulders and shook her.
"Whore!" he shouted.
"Whore! Impudent strumpet!"
"Oh, don't, do-on't," she
protested in a voice made grotesquely tremulous by his shaking.
"Whore!"
"Plea-ease."
"Damned whore!"
"A gra-amme is be-etter ..."
she began.
The Savage pushed her away with such
force that she staggered and fell.
"Go," he shouted, standing over her menacingly, "get out
of my sight or I'll kill you." He
clenched his fists.
Lenina raised her arm to cover her
face. "No, please don't, John
..."
"Hurry up. Quick!"
One arm still raised, and following his
every movement with a terrified eye, she scrambled to her feet, and still
crouching, still covering her head, made a dash for the bathroom.
The noise of that prodigious slap by
which her departure was accelerated was like a pistol-shot.
"Ow!" Lenina bounded forward.
Safely locked into the bathroom, she had
leisure to take stock of her injuries.
Standing with her back to the mirror, she twisted her head. Looking over her left shoulder she could see
the imprint of an open hand standing out distinct and crimson on the pearly
flesh. Gingerly she rubbed the wounded
spot.
Outside, in the other room, the Savage
was striding up and down, marching, marching to the drums and music of magical
words. "The wren goes to't, and the
small gilded fly does lecher in my sight."
Maddeningly they rumbled in his ears.
"The fitchew nor the soiled horse goes to't with a more riotous
appetite. Down from the waist they are
Centaurs, though women all above. But to
the girdle do the gods inherit. Beneath
is all the fiends'. There's hell,
there's darkness, there is the sulphurous pit, burning, scalding, stench,
consumption; fie, fie, fie, pah! Give me
an ounce of civet, good apothecary, to sweeten my imagination."
"John!" ventured a small
ingratiating voice from the bathroom.
"John!"
"O thou weed. who are so lovely fair
and smell'st so sweet that the sense aches at thee. Was this most goodly book made to write
'whore' upon? Heaven stops the nose at
it ..."
But her perfume still hung about him, his
jacket was white with the powder that had scented her velvety body. "Impudent strumpet, impudent strumpet,
impudent strumpet." The inexorable
rhythm beat itself out. "Impudent
..."
"John, do you think I might have my
clothes?"
He picked up the bell-bottomed trousers,
the blouse, the zippicamiknicks.
"Open!" he ordered, kicking the
door.
"No, I won't." The voice was frightened and defiant.
"Well, how do you expect me to give
them to you?"
"Push them through the ventilator
over the door."
He did what she suggested and returned to
his uneasy pacing of the room.
"Impudent strumpet, impudent strumpet. The devil Luxury with his fat rump and potato
finger ..."
"John."
He would not answer. "Fat rump and potato finger."
"John."
"What is it?" he asked gruffly.
"I wonder if you'd mind giving me my
Malthusian belt."
Lenina sat listening to the footsteps in
the other room, wondering, as she listened, how long he was likely to go
tramping up and down like that; whether she would have to wait until he left
the flat; or if it would be safe, after allowing his madness a reasonable time
to subside, to open the bathroom door and make a dash for it.
She was interrupted in the midst of these
uneasy speculations by the sound of the telephone bell ringing in the other
room. Abruptly the tramping ceased. She heard the voice of the Savage parleying
with silence.
"Hullo."
. . . . . .
"Yes."
. . . . . .
"If I do not usurp myself, I
am."
. . . . . .
"Yes, didn't you hear me say
so? Mr Savage speaking."
. . . . . .
"What? Who's ill?
Of course it interests me."
. . . . . .
"But is it serious? Is she really bad? I'll go at once ..."
. . . . . .
"Not in her rooms any more? Where has she been taken?"
. . . . . .
"Oh, my
God! What's the address?"
. . . . . .
"Three Park Lane - is that it? Three?
Thanks."
Lenina heard the click of the replaced
receiver, then hurrying steps. A door
slammed. There was silence. Was he really gone?
With an infinity of precautions she
opened the door a quarter of an inch; peeped through the crack; was encouraged
by the view of emptiness; opened a little further, and put her whole head out;
finally tiptoed into the room; stood for a few seconds with strongly beating
heart, listening, listening; then darted to the front door, opened, slipped
through, slammed, ran. It was not till
she was in the lift and actually dropping down the well that she began to feel
herself secure.
Chapter XIV
The Park
Lane Hospital for the Dying was a sixty-storey tower of primrose tiles. As the Savage stepped out of his taxicopter a
convoy of gaily-coloured aerial hearses rose whirring from the roof and darted
away across the Park, westwards, bound for the Slough Crematorium. At the lift gates the presiding porter gave
him the information he required, and he dropped down to Ward 81 (a Galloping Senility
ward, the porter explained) on the seventeenth floor.
It was a large room bright with sunshine
and yellow paint, and containing twenty beds, all occupied. Linda was dying in company - in company and
with all the modern conveniences. The
air was continuously alive with gay synthetic melodies. At the foot of every bed, confronting its
moribund occupant, was a television box.
Television was left on, a running tap, from morning till night. Every quarter of an hour the prevailing
perfume of the room was automatically changed.
"We try," explained the nurse, who had taken charge of the
Savage at the door, "we try to create a thoroughly pleasant atmosphere
here - something between a first-class hotel and a feely-palace, if you take my
meaning."
"Where is she?" asked the
Savage, ignoring these polite explanations.
The nurse was offended. "You are in a hurry," she
said.
"Is there any hope?" he asked.
"You mean, of her not
dying?" (He nodded.) "No, of course there isn't. When somebody's sent here, there's no ...“
Startled by the expression of distress on his pale face, she suddenly broke
off. "Why, whatever is the
matter?" she asked. She was not
accustomed to this kind of thing in visitors.
(Not that there were many visitors anyhow: or any reason why there
should be many visitors.) "You're
not feeling ill, are you?"
He shook his head. "She's my mother," he said in a
scarcely audible voice.
The nurse glanced at him with startled,
horrified eyes; then quickly looked away.
From throat to temple she was all one hot blush.
"Take me to her," said the
Savage, making an effort to speak in an ordinary tone.
Still blushing, she led the way down the
ward. Faces still fresh and unwithered
(for senility galloped so hard that it had no time to age the cheeks - only the
heart and brain) turned as they passed.
Their progress was followed by the blank, incurious eyes of secondary
infancy. The Savage shuddered as he
looked.
Linda was lying in the last of the long
row of beds, next to the wall. Propped
up on pillows, she was watching the Semi-finals of the South American
Riemann-Surface Tennis Championship, which were being played in silent and
diminished reproduction on the screen of the television box at the foot of the
bed. Hither and thither across their
square of illumined glass the little figures noiselessly darted, like fish in
an aquarium - the silent but agitated inhabitants of another world.
Linda looked on, vaguely and
uncomprehendingly smiling. Her pale,
bloated face wore an expression of imbecile happiness. Every now and then her eyelids closed, and
for a few seconds she seemed to be dozing.
Then with a little start she would wake up again - waking up to the
aquarium antics of the Tennis Champions, to the Super-Vox-Wurlitzeriana
rendering of 'Hug my till you drug me, honey,' to the warm draught of verbena
that came blowing through the ventilator above her head - would take to these
things, or rather to a dream of which these things, transformed and embellished
by the soma in her blood, were the marvellous constituents, and smile
once more her broken and discoloured smile of infantile contentment.
"Well, I must go," said the
nurse. "I've got my batch of
children coming. Besides, there's Number
3." She pointed up the ward. "Might go off any minute now. Well, make yourself comfortable." She walked briskly away.
The Savage sat down beside the bed.
"Linda," he whispered, taking
her hand.
At the sound of her name, she
turned. Her vague eyes brightened with
recognition. She squeezed his hand, she
smiled, her lips moved; then quite suddenly her head fell forward. She was asleep. He sat watching her - seeking through the
tired flesh, seeking and finding that young bright face which had stooped over
his childhood in Malpais, remembering (and his closed his eyes) her voice, her
movements, all the events of their life together. "Streptocock-Gee to Banbury-T ...” How
beautiful her singing had been! And
those childish rhymes, how magically strange and mysterious!
A, B, C, vitamin
D:
The fat's
in the liver, the cod's in the sea.
He felt the hot tears welling up behind
his eyelids as he recalled the words and Linda's voice as she repeated
them. And then the reading lessons; The
tot is in the pot, the cat is on the mat; and the Elementary Instructions for
Beta Workers in the Embryo Store. And
long evenings by the fire or, in summer time, on the roof of the little house,
when she told him those stories about the Other Place, outside the Reservation:
that beautiful, beautiful Other Place, whose memory, as of a heaven, a paradise
of goodness and loveliness, he still kept whole and intact, undefiled by
contact with the reality of this real London, these actual civilized men and
women.
A sudden noise of shrill voices made him open
his eyes and, after hastily brushing away the tears, look round. What seemed an interminable stream of
identical eight-year-old male twins was pouring into the room. Twin after twin, twin after twin, they came -
a nightmare. Their faces, their repeated
face - for there was only one between the lot of them - puggishly stared, all
nostrils and pale goggling eyes. Their
uniform was khaki. All their mouths hung
open. Squealing and chattering they
entered. In a moment, it seemed, the
ward was maggoty with them. They swarmed
between the beds, clambered over, crawled under, peeped into the television
boxes, made faces at the patients.
Linda astonished and rather alarmed
them. A group stood clustered at the
foot of her bed, staring with the frightened and stupid curiosity of animals
suddenly confronted by the unknown.
"Oh, look, look!" They spoke in low, scared voices. "Whatever is the matter with her? Why is she so fat?"
They had never seen a face like hers
before - had never seen a face that was not youthful and taut-skinned, a body
that had ceased to be slim and upright.
All these moribund sexagenerians had the appearance of childish
girls. At forty-four, Linda seemed, by
contrast, a monster of flaccid and distorted senility.
"Isn't she awful?" came the
whispered comments. "Look at her
teeth!"
Suddenly from under the bed a pug-faced
twin popped up between John's chair and the wall, and began peering into
Linda's sleeping face.
"I say ..." he began; but his
sentence ended prematurely in a squeal.
The Savage had seized him by the collar, lifted him clear over the chair
and, with a smart box on the ears, sent him howling away.
His yells brought the Head Nurse hurrying
to the rescue.
"What have you been doing to
him?" she demanded fiercely. "I
won't have you striking the children."
"Well, then, keep them away from
this bed." The Savage's voice was
trembling with indignation. "What
are these filthy little brats doing her at all?
It's disgraceful!"
"Disgraceful? But what do you mean? They're being death-conditioned. And I tell you," she warmed him
truculently, "if I have any more of your interference with their
conditioning, I'll send for the porters and have you thrown out."
The Savage rose to his feet and took a
couple of steps towards her. His
movements and the expression on his face were so menacing that the nurse fell
back in terror. With a great effort he
checked himself and, without speaking, turned away and sat down again by the
bed.
Reassured, but with a dignity that was a
trifle shrill and uncertain, "I've warned you," said the nurse,
"so mind." Still, she led the
too inquisitive twins away and made them join in the game of hunt-the-zipper,
which had been organized by one of her colleagues at the other end of the room.
"Run along now and have your cup of
caffeine solution, dear," she said to the other nurse. The exercise of authority restored her
confidence, made her feel better.
"Now children!" she called.
Linda had stirred uneasily, had opened
her eyes for a moment, looked vaguely around, and then once more dropped off to
sleep. Sitting beside her, the Savage
tried hard to recapture his mood of a few minutes before. "A, B, C, vitamin D," he repeated
to himself, as though the words were a spell that would restore the dead past
to life. But the spell was
ineffective. Obstinately the beautiful
memories refused to rise; there was only a hateful resurrection of jealousies
and uglinessess and miseries. Popé with
the blood trickling down from his cut shoulder; and Linda hideously asleep, and
the flies buzzing round the spilt mescal on the floor beside the bed;
and the boys calling those names as she passed ... Ah, no, no! He shut his eyes, he shook his head in
strenuous denial of these memories.
"A, B, C, vitamin D ...” He tried to think of those times when he
sat on her knees and she put her arms about him and sang, over and over again,
rocking him, rocking him to sleep.
"A, B, C, vitamin D, vitamin D ..."
The Super-Vox Wurlitzeriana had risen to
a sobbing crescendo; and suddenly the verbena gave place, in the
scent-circulating system, to an intense patchouli. Linda stirred, woke up, stared for a few
seconds bewilderedly at the Semi-finalists,
then, lifting her face, sniffed once or twice at the newly perfumed air
and suddenly smiled - a smile of childish ecstasy.
"Popé!" she murmured, and
closed her eyes. "Oh, I do so like
it, I do ...” She sighed and let herself sink back into the pillows.
"But, Linda!" The Savage spoke imploringly. "Don't you know me?" He had tried so hard, had done his very best;
why wouldn't she allow him to forget? He
squeezed her limp hand almost with violence, as though he would force her to
come back from this dream of ignoble pleasures, from these base and hateful
memories - back into the present, back into reality' the appalling present, the
awful reality - but sublime, but significant, but desperately important
precisely because of the imminence of that which made them so fearful. "Don't you know me, Linda?"
He felt the faint answering pressure of
her hand. The tears started into his
eyes. He bent over her and kissed her.
Her lips moved. "Popé!" she whispered again, and it was as though he
had had a pailful of ordure thrown into his face.
Anger suddenly boiled up in him. Balked for the second time, the passion of his
grief had found another outlet, was transformed into a passion of agonized
rage.
"But I'm John!" he
shouted. "I'm John!" And in his furious misery he actually caught
her by the shoulder and shook her.
Linda's eyes fluttered open; she saw him,
knew him - "John!" - but situated the real face, the real and violent
hands, in an imaginary world - among the inward and private equivalents of
patchouli and the Super-Wurlitzer, among the transfigured memories and the
strangely transposed sensations that constituted the universe of her
dream. She knew him for John, her son,
but fancied him an intruder into that paradisal Malpais where she had been
spending her soma-holiday with Popé.
He was angry because she liked Popé, he was shaking her because Popé was
there in the bed - as though there was something wrong, as though all civilized
people didn't do the same?
"Everyone belongs to every ...” Her voice suddenly died into an
almost inaudible breathless croaking: her mouth fell open: she made a desperate
effort to fill her lungs with air. But
it was as though she had forgotten how to breathe. She tried to cry out - but no sound came;
only the terror of her staring eyes revealed what she was suffering. Her hands went to her throat, then clawed at
the air - the air she could no longer breathe, the air that, for her, had
ceased to exist.
The Savage was on his feet, bent over
her. "What is it, Linda? What is it?" His voice was imploring; it was as though he
were begging to be reassured.
The look she gave him was charged with an
unspeakable terror - with terror and, it seemed to him, reproach. She tired to raise herself in bed, but fell
back on to the pillows. Her face was
horribly distorted, her lips blue.
The Savage turned and ran up the ward.
"Quick, quick!" he
shouted. "Quick!"
Standing in the centre of a ring of
zipper-hunting twins, the Head Nurse looked round. The first moment's astonishment gave place
almost instantly to disapproval.
"Don't shout! Think of the
little ones," she said, frowning.
"You might decondition ... But what are you doing?" He had broken through the ring. "Be careful!" A child was yelling.
"Quick, quick!" He caught her by the sleeve, dragger her
after him. "Quick! Something's happened. I've killed her."
By the time they were back at the end of
the ward Linda was dead.
The Savage stood for a moment in frozen
silence, then fell on his knees beside the bed and, covering his face with his
hands, sobbed uncontrollably.
The nurse stood irresolute, looking now
at the kneeling figure by the bed (the scandalous exhibition!) and now (poor
children!) at the twins who had stopped their hunting of the zipper and were
staring from the other end of the ward, staring with all their eyes and
nostrils at the shocking scene that was being enacted round Bed 20. Should she speak to him? try to bring him
back to a sense of decency? remind him of where he was? of what fatal mischief
he might do to these poor innocents?
Undoing all their wholesome death-conditioning with this disgusting
outcry - as though death were something terrible, as though anyone mattered as
much as all that! It might give them the
most disastrous ideas about the subject, might upset them into reacting in the
entirely wrong way, the utterly anti-social way.
She stepped forward, she touched him on
the shoulder. "Can't you
behave?" she said in a low, angry voice.
But, looking round, she saw that half a dozen twins were already on
their feet and advancing down the ward.
The circle was disintegrating. In
another moment ... No, the risk was too great; the whole group might be put
back six or seven months in its conditioning.
She hurried back towards her menaced charges.
"Now, who wants a chocolate
éclair?" she asked in a loud, cheerful tone.
"Me!" yelled the entire
Bokanovsky Group in chorus. Bed 20 was
completely forgotten.
"Oh, God, God, God ..." the
Savage kept repeating to himself. In the
chaos of grief and remorse that filled his mind it was the one articulate word. "God!" He whispered it aloud. "God ..."
"Whatever is he saying?"
said a voice, very near, distinct and shrill through the warblings of the
Super-Wurlitzer.
The Savage violently started and,
uncovering his face, looked round. Five
khaki twins, each with the stump of a long éclair in his right hand, and their
identical faces variously smeared with liquid chocolate, were standing in a
row, puggily goggling at him.
They met his eyes and simultaneously
grinned. One of them pointed with his
éclair butt.
"Is she dead?" he asked.
The Savage stared at him for a moment in
silence. Then, in silence he rose to his feet, in silence slowly walked
towards the door.
"Is she dead?" repeated the
inquisitive twin, trotting at his side.
The Savage looked down at him and still
without speaking pushed him away. The
twin fell on the floor and at once began to howl. The Savage did not even look round.
Chapter XV
The
menial staff for the Park Lane Hospital of the Dying consisted of one hundred and
sixty-two Deltas divided into two Bokanovsky Groups of eighty-four red-headed
female and seventy-eight dark dilochocephalic male twins, respectively. At six, when their working day was over, the
two Groups assembled in the vestibule of the Hospital and were served by the
Deputy Sub-Bursar with the soma ration.
From the lift the Savage stepped out into
the midst of them. But his mind was
elsewhere - with death, with his grief, and his remorse; mechanically, without
consciousness of what he was doing, he began to shoulder his way through the
crowd.
"Who are you pushing? Where do you think you're going?"
High, low, from a multitude of separate
throats, only two voices squeaked or growled.
Repeated indefinitely, as though by a train of mirrors, two faces, one a
hairless and freckled moon haloed in orange, the other a thin, beaked
bird-mask, stubbly with two days' beard, turned angrily towards him. Their words and, in his ribs, the sharp
nudging of elbows, broke through his unawareness. He woke once more to external reality, looked
round him, knew what he saw - knew it, with a sinking sense of horror and
disgust, for the recurrent delirium of his days and nights, the nightmare of
swarming indistinguishable sameness.
Twins, twins ... Like maggots they had swarmed defilingly over the
mystery of Linda's death. Maggots again,
but larger, full grown, they now crawled across his grief and his
repentance. He halted and, with bewildered
and horrified eyes, stared round him at the khaki mob, in the midst of which,
overtopping it by a full head, he stood.
"How many goodly creatures are there here!" The singing words mocked him derisively. "How beauteous mankind is! O brave new world ..."
"Soma distribution!"
shouted a loud voice. "In good
order please. Hurry up there."
A door had been opened, a table and chair
carried into the vestibule. The voice
was that of a jaunty young Alpha, who had entered carrying a black iron
cash-box. A murmur of satisfaction went
up from the expectant twins. They forgot
all about the Savage. Their attention
was now focused upon the black cash-box, which the young man had placed on the
table, and was now in process of unlocking.
The lid was lifted.
"Oo-oh!" said all the hundred
and sixty-two simultaneously, as though they were looking at fireworks.
The young man took out a handful of tiny
pill-boxes. "Now," he said
peremptorily, "step forward, please.
One at a time, and no shoving."
One at a time, with no shoving, the twins
stepped forward. First two males, then a
female, then another male, then three females, then ..."
The Savage stood looking on. "O brave new world, O brave new
world ..." In his mind the singing words seemed to
change their tone. They had mocked him
through his misery and remorse, mocking him with how hideous a note of comical
derision! Fiendishly laughing, they had
insisted on the low squalor, the nauseous ugliness of the nightmare. Now, suddenly, they trumpeted a call to
arms. "O brave new
world!" Miranda was proclaiming the
possibility of loveliness, the possibility of transforming even the nightmare
into something fine and noble. "O
brave new world!" It was a
challenge, a command.
"No shoving there, now!"
shouted the Deputy Sub-Bursar in a fury.
He slammed down the lid of his cash-box. "I shall stop the distribution unless I
have good behaviour."
The Deltas muttered, jostled one another
a little, and then were still. The
threat had been effective. Deprivation
of soma - appalling thought!
"That's better," said the young
man, and re-opened his cash-box.
Linda had been a slave, Linda had died;
others should live in freedom, and the world be made beautiful. A reparation, a duty. And suddenly it was luminously clear to the
Savage what he must do; it was as though a shutter had been opened, a curtain
drawn back.
"Now," said the Deputy
Sub-Bursar.
Another khaki female stepped forward.
"Stop!" called the Savage in a
loud and ringing voice.
"Stop!"
He pushed his way to the table; the
Deltas stared at him with astonishment.
"Ford!" said the Deputy
Sub-Bursar below his breath. "It's
the Savage." He felt scared.
"Listen, I beg you," cried the
Savage earnestly. "Lend me your
ears ...” He had never spoken in public before, and found it very difficult to
express what he wanted to say. "Don't
take that horrible stuff. It's poison,
it's poison."
"I say, Mr Savage," said the
Deputy Sub-Bursar, smiling propitiatingly.
"Would you mind letting me ..."
"Poison to soul as well as
body."
"Yes, but let me get on with my distribution,
won't you? There's a good
fellow." With the cautious
tenderness of one who strokes a notoriously vicious animal, he patted the
Savage's arm. "Just let me
..."
"Never!" cried the Savage.
"But look here, old man ..."
"Throw it all away, that horrible
poison."
The words 'Throw it all away' pierced
through the enfolding layers of incomprehension to the quick of the Deltas'
consciousness. An angry murmur went up
from the crowd.
"I come to bring you freedom,"
said the Savage, turning back towards the twins. "I come ..."
The Deputy Sub-Bursar heard no more; he
had slipped out of the vestibule and was looking up a number in the telephone
book.
"Not in his own rooms," Bernard
summed up. "Not in mine, not in
yours. Not at the Aphroditaeum; not at
the Centre or the College. Where can he
have got to?"
Helmholtz shrugged his shoulders. They had come back from their work expected
to find the Savage waiting for them at one or other of their usual
meeting-places, and there was no sign of the fellow. Which was annoying, as they had meant to nip
across to Biarritz in Helmholtz's four-seater sporticopter. They'd be late for dinner if they didn't come
soon.
"We'll give him five more
minutes," said Helmholtz. "If
he doesn't turn up by then, we'll ..."
The ringing of the telephone bell
interrupted him. He picked up the
receiver. "Hello. Speaking." Then, after a long interval of listening,
"Ford in Flivver!" he swore.
"I'll come at once."
"What is it?" Bernard asked.
"A fellow I know at the Park Lane
Hospital," said Helmholtz.
"The Savage is there. Seems
to have gone mad. Anyhow, it's urgent. Will you come with me?"
Together they hurried along the corridor
to the lifts.
"But do you like being slaves?"
the Savage was saying as they entered the Hospital. His face was flushed, his eyes bright with
ardour and indignation. "Do you
like being babies? Yes, babies. Mewling and puking," he added,
exasperated by their bestial stupidity into throwing insults at those he had
come to save. The insults bounced off
their carapace of thick stupidity; they stared at him with a blank expression
of dull and sullen resentment in their eyes.
"Yes, puking!" he fairly shouted. Grief and remorse, compassion and duty - all were forgotten now and, as it were,
absorbed into an intense overpowering hatred of these less than human
monsters. "Don't you want to be
free and men? Don't you even understand
what manhood and freedom are?" Rage
was making him fluent; the words came easily, in a rush. "Don't you?" he repeated, but got
no answer to his question. "Very
well, then," he went on grimly.
"I'll teach you; I'll make you be free whether you want to
or not." And pushing open a window
that looked on to the inner court of the Hospital, he began to throw the little
pill-boxes of soma tablets in handfuls out into the area.
For a moment the khaki mob was silent,
petrified, at the spectacle of this wanton sacrilege, with amazement and
horror.
"He's mad," whispered Bernard,
staring with wide open eyes. "They'll
kill him. They'll ...” A great shout
suddenly went up from the mob; a wave of movement drove it menacingly towards
the Savage. "Ford help him!"
said Bernard, and averted his eyes.
"Ford helps those who help
themselves." And with a laugh,
actually a laugh of exultation, Helmholtz Watson pushed his way through the
crowd.
"Free, free!" the Savage
shouted, and with one hand continued to throw the soma into the area
while, with the other, he punched the indistinguishable faces of his
assailants. "Free!" And suddenly there was Helmholtz at his side
- "Good old Helmholtz!" - also punching - "Men at last!" -
and in the interval also throwing the poison out by handfuls through the open
window. "Yes, men! men!" and
there was no more poison left. He picked
up the cash-box and showed them its black emptiness. "You're free."
Howling, the Deltas charged with a
redoubled fury.
Hesitant on the fringes of the battle,
"They're done for," said Bernard and, urged by a sudden impulse, ran
forward to help them; then thought better of it and halted; then, ashamed,
stepped forward again; then again thought better of it, and was standing in an
agony of humiliated indecision - thinking that they might be killed if
he didn't help them, and that he might be killed if he did - when (Ford
be praised!), goggle-eyed and swine-snouted in their gas-masks, in ran the
police.
Bernard dashed to meet them. He waved his arms; and it was action, he was
doing something. He shouted
"Help!" several times, more and more loudly so as to give himself the
illusion of helping. "Help! Help!
HELP!"
The policemen pushed him out of the way
and got on with their work. Three men
with spraying machines buckled to their shoulders pumped thick clouds of soma
vapour into the air. Two more were busy
round the portable Synthetic Music Box.
Carrying water pistols charged with a powerful anesthetic, four others
had pushed their way into the crowd and were methodically laying out, squirt by
squirt, the more ferocious of the fighters.
"Quick, quick!" yelled
Bernard. "They'll be killed if you
don't hurry. They'll ... Oh!" Annoyed by his chatter, one of the policemen
had given him a shot from his water pistol.
Bernard stood for a second or two wambling unsteadily on legs that
seemed to have lost their bones, their tendons, their muscles, to have become
mere sticks of jelly, and at last not even jelly - water: he tumbled in a heap
on the floor.
Suddenly, from out of the Synthetic Music
Box a Voice began to speak. The Voice of
Reason, the Voice of Good Feeling. The
soundtrack roll was unwinding itself in Synthetic Anti-Riot Speech Number Two
(Medium Strength). Straight from the
depths of a non-existent heart, "My friends, my friends!" said the
Voice so pathetically, with a note of such infinitely tender reproach that,
behind their gas-masks, even the policemen's eyes were momentarily dimmed with
tears, "what is the meaning of this?
Why aren't you all being happy and good together? Happy and good," the Voice
repeated. "At peace, peace." It trembled, sank into a whisper and
momentarily expired. "Oh, I do want
you to be happy," it began, with a yearning earnestness. "I do so want you to be good! Please, please be good and ..."
Two minutes later the Voice and the soma
vapour had produced their effect. In
tears, the Deltas were kissing and hugging one another - half a dozen twins at
a time in a comprehensive embrace. Even
Helmholtz and the Savage were almost crying.
A fresh supply of pill-boxes was brought in from the Bursary; a new
distribution was hastily made and, to the sound of the Voice's richly
affectionate, baritone valedictions, the twins dispersed, blubbering as though
their hears would break. "Goodbye,
my dearest, dearest friends, Ford keep you!
Goodbye, my dearest, dearest friends, Ford keep you. Goodbye, my dearest, dearest ..."
When the last of the Deltas had gone, the
policeman switched off the current. The
angelic Voice fell silent.
"Will you come quietly?" asked
the Sergeant, "or must we anaesthetize?" He pointed his water pistol menacingly.
"Oh, we'll come quietly," the
Savage answered, dabbing alternately a cut lip, a scratched neck, and a bitten
left hand.
Still keeping his handkerchief to his
bleeding nose, Helmholtz nodded in confirmation.
Awake and having recovered the use of his
legs, Bernard had chosen this moment to move as inconspicuously as he could
towards the door.
"Hi, you there," called the
Sergeant, and a swine-masked policeman hurried across the room and laid a hand
on the young man's shoulder.
Bernard turned with an expression of
indignant innocence. Escaping? He hadn't dreamed of such a thing. "Though what on earth you want me
for," he said to the Sergeant, "I really can't imagine."
"You're a friend of the prisoners,
aren't you?"
"Well ..." said Bernard, and
hesitated. No, he really couldn't deny
it. "Why shouldn't I be?" he
asked.
"Come on, then," said the
Sergeant, and led the way towards the door and the waiting police car.
Chapter XVI
The room
into which the three were ushered was the Controller's study.
"His fordship will be down in a
moment." The Gamma butler left them
to themselves.
Helmholtz laughed aloud.
"It's more like a caffeine-solution
party than a trial," he said, and let himself fall into the most luxurious
of the pneumatic armchairs. "Cheer
up, Bernard," he added, catching sight of his friend's green unhappy
face. But Bernard would not be cheered;
without answering, without even looking at Helmholtz, he went and sat down on
the most uncomfortable chair in the room, carefully chosen in the obscure hope
of somehow deprecating the wrath of the higher powers.
The Savage meanwhile wandered restlessly
round the room, peering with a vague superficial inquisitiveness at the books
on the shelves, at the soundtrack rolls and the reading-machine bobbins in
their numbered pigeon-holes. On the
table under the window lay a massive volume bound in limp black
leather-surrogate, and stamped with large golden T's. He picked it up and opened it. MY LIFE AND WORK, BY OUR FORD. The book had been published at Detroit by the
Society for the Propagation of Fordian Knowledge. Idly he turned the pages, read a sentence
here, a paragraph there, and had just come to the conclusion that the book
didn't interest him, when the door opened, and the Resident World Controller
for Western Europe walked briskly into the room.
Mustapha Mond shook hands with all three
of them; but it was to the Savage that he addressed himself. "So you don't much like civilization, Mr
Savage," he said.
The Savage looked at him. He had been prepared to lie, to bluster, to
remain sullenly unresponsive; but, reassured by the good-humoured intelligence
of the Controller's face, he decided to tell the truth, straightforwardly. "No." He shook his head.
Bernard started and looked
horrified. What would the Controller
think? To be labelled as the friend of a
man who said that he didn't like civilization, said it openly and, of all people,
to the Controller - it was terrible.
"But, John," he began.
A look from Mustapha Mond reduced him to an abject silence.
"Of course," the Savage went on
to admit, "there are some very nice things. All that music in the air, for instance
..."
"Sometimes a thousand twangling
instruments will hum about my ears, and sometimes voices."
The Savage's face lit up with a sudden
pleasure. "Have you read it
too?" he asked. "I thought
nobody knew about that book here, in England."
"Almost nobody. I'm one of the very few. It's prohibited, you see. But as I make the laws here, I can also break
them. With impunity, Mr Marx," he
added, turning to Bernard. "Which
I'm afraid you can't do."
Bernard sank into a yet more hopeless
misery.
"But why is it prohibited?"
asked the Savage. In the excitement of
meeting a man who had read Shakespeare he had momentarily forgotten everything
else.
The Controller shrugged his
shoulders. "Because it's old;
that's the chief reason. We haven't any
use for old things here."
"Even when they're beautiful?"
"Particularly when they're
beautiful. Beauty's attractive, and we
don't want people to be attracted by old things. We want them to like the new ones."
"But the new ones are so stupid and
horrible. Those plays, where there's
nothing but helicopters flying about and you feel the people kissing." He made a grimace. "Goats and monkeys!" Only in Othello's words could he find an
adequate vehicle for his contempt and hatred.
"Nice tame animals, anyhow,"
the Controller murmured parenthetically.
"Why don't you let them see Othello
instead?"
"I've told you; it's old. Besides, they couldn't understand it."
Yes, that was true. He remembered how Helmholtz had laughed at Romeo
and Juliet. "Well, then,"
he said, after a pause, "something new that's like Othello, and
that they could understand."
"That's what we've all been wanting
to write," said Helmholtz, breaking a long silence.
"And it's what you never will
write," said the Controller.
"Because, if it were really like Othello nobody could
understand it, however new it might be.
And if it were new, it couldn't possibly be like Othello."
"Why not?"
"Yes, why not?" Helmholtz
repeated. He too was forgetting the
unpleasant realities of the situation.
Green with anxiety and apprehension, only Bernard remembered them; the
others ignored him. "Why not?"
"Because our world is not the same
as Othello's world. You can't make
flivvers without steel - and you can't make tragedies without social
instability. The world's stable now. People are happy; they get what they want,
and they never want what they can't get.
They're well off; they're safe; they're never ill; they're not afraid of
death; they're blissfully ignorant of passion and old age; they're plagued with
no mothers or fathers; they've got no wives, or children, or lovers to feel
strongly about; they're so conditioned that they practically can't help
behaving as they ought to behave. And if
anything should go wrong, there's soma.
Which you go and chuck out of the window in the name of liberty, Mr
Savage. Liberty!" He laughed.
"Expecting Deltas to know what liberty is! And now expecting them to understand Othello! My good boy!"
The Savage was silent for a little. "All the same," he insisted
obstinately, "Othello's good, Othello's better than those
feelies."
"Of course it is," the Controller
agreed. "But that's the price we
have to pay for stability. You've got to
choose between happiness and what people used to call high art. We've sacrificed the high art. We have the feelies and the scent organ
instead."
"But they don't mean anything."
"They mean themselves; they mean a
lot of agreeable sensations to the audience ..."
"But they're ... they're told by an
idiot."
The Controller laughed. "You're not being very polite to your
friend, Mr Watson. One of our most
distinguished Emotional Engineers ..."
"But he's right," said
Helmholtz gloomily. "Because it is
idiotic. Writing when there's nothing to
say."
"Precisely. But that requires the most enormous
ingenuity. You're making flivvers out of
the absolute minimum of steel - works of art out of practically nothing but
pure sensation."
The Savage shook his head. "It all seems to me quite
horrible."
"Of course it does. Actual happiness always looks pretty squalid
in comparison with the over-compensations for misery. And, of course, stability isn't nearly so
spectacular as instability. And being
contented has none of the glamour of a good fight against misfortune, none of
the picturesqueness of a struggle with
temptation, or a fatal overthrow by passion or doubt. Happiness is never grand."
"I suppose not," said the
Savage after a silence. "But need
it be quite so bad as those twins?"
He passed his hand over his eyes as though he were trying to wipe away
the remembered image of those long rows of identical midgets at the assembling
tables, those queued-up twin-herds at the entrance to the Brentford monorail
station, those human maggots swarming round Linda's bed of death, the endlessly
repeated face of his assailants. He
looked at his bandaged left hand and shuddered.
"Horrible!"
"But how useful! I see you don't like our Bokanovsky Groups;
but I assure you, they're the foundation upon which everything else is
built. They're the gyroscope that stabilizes
the rocket plane of state on its unswerving course." The deep voice thrillingly vibrated; the
gesticulating hand implied all space and the onrush of the irresistible
machine. Mustapha Mond's oratory was almost
up to synthetic standards.
"I was wondering," said the
Savage, "why you had them at all - seeing that you can get whatever you
want out of those bottles. Why don't you
make everybody an Alpha Double-Plus while you're about it?"
Mustapha Mond laughed. "Because we have no wish to have our
throats cut," he answered. "We
believe in happiness and stability. A
society of Alphas couldn't fail to be unstable and miserable. Imagine a factory staffed by Alphas - that is
to say be separate and unrelated individuals of good heredity and conditioned
so as to be capable (within limits) of making a free choice and of assuming
responsibilities. Imagine it!" he
repeated.
The Savage tried to imagine it, not very
successfully.
"It's an absurdity. An Alpha-decanted, Alpha-conditioned man
would go mad if he had to do Epsilon Semi-Moron work - go mad, or start
smashing things up. Alphas can be
completely socialized, but only on condition that you make them do Alpha
work. Only an Epsilon can be expected to
make Epsilon sacrifices; they're the line of least resistance. His conditioning has laid down rails along
which he's got to run. He can't help
himself; he's foredoomed. Even after
decanting, he's still inside a bottle - an invisible bottle of infantile and
embryonic fixations. Each one of us, of
course," the Controller meditatively continued, "goes through life
inside a bottle. But if we happen to be
Alphas, our bottles are, relatively speaking, enormous. We should suffer acutely if we were confined
in a narrower space. You cannot pour
upper-caste champagne-surrogate into lower-caste bottles. It's obvious theoretically. But it has also been proved in actual
experience. The result of the Cyprus
experiment was convincing."
"What was that?" asked the
Savage.
Mustapha Mond smiled. "Well, you can call it an experiment in
rebottling if you like. It began in A.F.
473. The Controllers had the island of
Cyprus cleared of all its existing inhabitants and re-colonized with a
specially-prepared batch of twenty-two thousand Alphas. All agricultural and industrial equipment was
handed over to them and they were left to manage their own affairs. The result exactly fulfilled all the
theoretical predictions. The land wasn't
properly worked; there were strikes in all the factories; the laws were set at
naught, orders disobeyed; all the people detailed for a spell of low-grade work
were perpetually intriguing for high-grade jobs, and all the people with
high-grade jobs were counter-intriguing at all costs to stay where they
were. Within six years they were having
a first-class civil war. When nineteen
out of the twenty-two thousand had been killed, the survivors unanimously
petitioned the World Controllers to resume the government of the island. Which they did. And that was the end of the only society of
Alphas that the world has ever seen."
The Savage sighed, profoundly.
"The optimum population," said
Mustapha Mond, "is modelled on the iceberg - eight-ninths below the water
line, one-ninth above."
"And they're happy below the water
line?"
"Happier than above it. Happier than your friends here, for
example." He pointed.
"In spite of that awful work?"
"Awful? They don't find it so. On the contrary, they like it. It's light, it's childishly simple. No strain on the mind or the muscles. Seven and a half hours of mild, unexhausting
labour, and then the soma ration and games and unrestricted copulation
and the feelies. What more can they ask
for? True," he added, "they
might ask for shorter hours. And of
course we could give them shorter hours.
Technically, it would be perfectly simple to reduce all lower-caste
working hours to three or four a day.
But would they be any the happier for that? No, they wouldn't. The experiment was tried, more than a century
and a half ago. The whole of Ireland was
put on to the four-hour day. What was the
result? Unrest and a large increase in
the consumption of soma; that was all.
Those three and a half hours of extra leisure were so far from being a
source of happiness, that people felt constrained to take a holiday from
them. The Inventions Office is stuffed
with plans for labour-saving processes.
Thousands of them." Mustapha
Mond made a lavish gesture. "And
why don't we put them into execution?
For the sake of the labourers; it would be sheer cruelty to afflict them
with excessive leisure. It's the same
with agriculture. We could synthesize
every morsel of food, if we wanted to.
But we don't. We prefer to keep a
third of the population on the land. For
their own sakes - because it takes longer to get food out of the land
than out of a factory. Besides, we have
our stability to think of. We don't want
to change. Every change is a menace to
stability. That's another reason why
we're so chary of applying new inventions.
Every discovery in pure science is potentially subversive; even science
must sometimes be treated as a possible enemy.
Yes, even science."
Science?
The Savage frowned. He knew the word. But what it exactly signified he could not
say. Shakespeare and the old men of the
pueblo had never mentioned science, and from Linda he had only gathered the
vaguest hints: science was something you make helicopters with, something that
caused you to laugh at the Corn Dances, something that prevented you from being
wrinkled and losing your teeth. He made
a desperate effort to take the Controller's meaning.
"Yes," Mustapha Mond was
saying, "that's another item in the cost of stability. It isn't only art that's incompatible with
happiness; it's also science. Science is
dangerous; we have to keep it most carefully chained and muzzled."
"What?" said Helmholtz, in
astonishment. "But we're always
saying that science is everything. It's
a hypnopaedic platitude."
"Three times a week between thirteen
and seventeen," put in Bernard.
"And all the science propaganda we
do at the College ..."
"Yes; but what sort of
science?" asked Mustapha Mond sarcastically. "You've had no scientific training, so
you can't judge. I was a pretty good
physicist in my time. Too good - good
enough to realize that all our science is just a cookery book, with an orthodox
theory of cooking that nobody's allowed to question, and a list of recipes that
mustn't be added to except by special permission from the head cook. I'm the head cook now. But I was an inquisitive young scullion
once. I started doing a bit of cooking
on my own. Unorthodox cooking, illicit
cooking. A bit of real science, in
fact." He was silent.
"What happened?" asked
Helmholtz Watson.
The Controller sighed. "Very nearly what's going to happen to
you young men. I was on the point of being
sent to an island."
The words galvanized Bernard into a
violent and unseemly activity.
"Send me to an island?"
He jumped up, ran across the room, and stood gesticulating in front of
the Controller. "You can't send me. I haven't done anything. It was the others. I swear it was the others." He pointed accusingly to Helmholtz and the
Savage. "Oh, please don't sent me
to Iceland. I promise I'll do what I
ought to do. Give me another
chance." The tears began to
flow. "I tell you, it's their fault," he
sobbed. "And not to Iceland. Oh, please, your fordship, please
..." And in a paroxysm of abjection
he threw himself on his knees before the Controller. Mustapha Mond tried to make him get up; but
Bernard persisted in his grovelling; the stream of words poured out
inexhaustibly. In the end the Controller
had to ring for his fourth secretary.
"Bring three men," he ordered,
"and take Mr Marx into a bedroom.
Give him a good soma vaporization and then put him to bed and
leave him."
The fourth secretary went out and
returned with three green-uniformed twin footmen. Still shouting and sobbing, Bernard was
carried out.
"One would think he was going to
have his throat cut," said the Controller, as the door closed. "Whereas, if he had the smallest sense,
he'd understand that his punishment is really a reward. He's being sent to an island. That's to say, he's being sent to a place
where he'll meet the most interesting set of men and women to be found anywhere
in the world. All the people who, for
one reason or another, have got too self-consciously individual to fit into
community-life. All the people who
aren't satisfied with orthodoxy, who've got independent ideas of their own. Everyone, in a word, who's anyone. I almost envy you, Mr Watson."
Helmholtz laughed. "Than why aren't you on an island
yourself?"
"Because, finally, I preferred
this," the Controller answered.
"I was given the choice: to be sent to an island, where I could
have got on with my pure science, or to be taken on to the Controller's Council
with the prospect of succeeding in due course to an actual Controllership. I chose this and let the science
go." After a little silence, "Sometimes,"
he added, "I rather regret the science.
Happiness is a hard master - particularly other people's happiness. A much harder master, if one isn't
conditioned to accept it unquestionably, than truth." He sighed, fell silent again, then continued in
a brisker tone. "Well, duty's
duty. One can't consult one's own
preferences. I'm interested in truth, I
like science. But truth's a menace,
science is a public danger. As dangerous
as it's been beneficent. It has given us
the stablest equilibrium in history.
China's was hopelessly insecure by comparison; even the primitive matriarchies
weren't steadier than we are. Thanks, I
repeat, to science. But we can't allow
science to undo its own good work.
That's why we so carefully limit the scope of its researches - that's
why I almost got sent to an island. We
don't allow it to deal with any but the most immediate problems of the
moment. All other enquiries are most
sedulously discouraged. It's
curious," he went on after a little pause, "to read what people in
the time of Our Ford used to write about scientific progress. They seemed to have imagined that it could be
allowed to go on indefinitely, regardless of everything else. Knowledge was the highest good, truth the
supreme value; all the rest was secondary and subordinate. True, ideas were beginning to change even
then. Our Ford himself did a great deal
to shift the emphasis from truth and beauty to comfort and happiness. Mass production demanded the shift. Universal happiness keeps the wheels steadily
turning; truth and beauty can't. And, of
course, whenever the masses seized political power, then it was happiness
rather than beauty and truth that mattered.
Still, in spite of everything, unrestricted scientific research was
still permitted. People still went on
talking about truth and beauty as though they were the sovereign goods. Right up to the time of the Nine Years'
War. That made them change their
tune all right. What's the point of
truth or beauty or knowledge when anthrax bombs are popping all around
you? That was when science first began
to be controlled - after the Nine Years' War.
People were ready to have even their appetites controlled then. Anything for a quiet life. We've gone on controlling ever since. It hasn't been very good for truth, of
course. But it's been very good for
happiness. One can't have something for
nothing. Happiness has got to be paid
for. You're paying for it, Mr Watson -
paying because you happen to be too much interested in beauty. I was too much interested in truth; I paid
too."
"But you didn't go to an
island," said the Savage, breaking a long silence.
The Controller smiled. "That's how I paid. By choosing to serve happiness. Other people's - not mine. It's lucky," he added, after a pause,
"that there are such a lot of islands in the world. I don't know what we should do without
them. Put you all in the lethal chamber,
I suppose. By the way, Mr Watson, would
you like a tropical climate? The
Marquesas, for example; or Samoa? Or
something rather more bracing?"
Helmholtz rose from his pneumatic
chair. "I should like a thoroughly
bad climate," he answered. "I
believe one would write better if the climate were bad. If
there were a lot of wind and storms, for example ..."
The Controller nodded his
approbation. "I like your spirit,
Mr Watson. I like it very much indeed. As much as I officially disapprove of
it." He smiled. "What about the Falkland Islands?"
"Yes, I think that will do,"
Helmholtz answered. "And now, if
you don't mind, I'll go and see how poor Bernard's getting on."
Chapter XVII
"Art,
science - you seem to have paid a fairly high price for your happiness,"
said the Savage, when they were alone.
"Anything else?"
"Well, religion, of course,” replied
the Controller. "There used to be
something called God - before the Nine Years' War. But I was forgetting; you know all about God,
I suppose."
"Well ...” The Savage
hesitated. He would have liked to say
something about solitude, about night, about the mesa lying pale under the
moon, about the precipice, the plunge into shadowy darkness, about death. He would have liked to speak; but there were
no words. Not even in Shakespeare.
The Controller, meanwhile, had crossed to
the other side of the room and was unlocking a large safe let into the wall
between the bookshelves. The heavy door
swung open. Rummaging in the darkness
within, "It's a subject," he said, "that has always had a great
interest for me." He pulled out a
thick black volume. "You've never
read this, for example."
The Savage took it. "The Holy Bible, containing the Old
and New Testaments," he read aloud from the title-page.
"Nor this." It was a small book and had lost its cover.
"The Imitation of Christ."
"Nor this." He handed out another volume.
"The Varieties of Religious
Experience. By William James."
"And I've got plenty more,"
Mustapha Mond continued, resuming his seat.
"A whole collection of pornographic old books. God in the safe and Ford on the
shelves." He pointed with a laugh
to his avowed library - to shelves of books, the racks full of reading-machine
bobbins and soundtrack rolls.
"But if you know about God, why
don't you tell them?" asked the Savage indignantly. "Why don't you give them these books
about God?"
"For the same reason as we don't
give them Othello: they're old; they're about God hundreds of years
ago. Not about God now."
"But God doesn't change."
"Men do, though."
"What difference does that
make?"
"All the difference in the
world," said Mustapha Mond. He got
up again and walked to the safe.
"There was a man called Cardinal Newman," he said. "A cardinal," he exclaimed
parenthetically, "was a kind of Arch-Community Songster."
"'I, Pandulph, of fair Milan
cardinal.' I've read about them in
Shakespeare."
"Of course you have. Well, as I was saying, there was a man called
Cardinal Newman. Ah, here's the
book." He pulled it out. "And while I'm about it I'll take this
one too. It's by a man named Maine de
Biran. He was a philosopher, if you know
what that was."
"A man who dreams of fewer things
than there are in heaven and earth," said the Savage promptly.
"Quite so. I'll read you one of the things he did
dream of in a moment. Meanwhile, listen
to what this old Arch-Community Songster said." He opened the book at the place marked by a
slip of paper and began to read.
"'We are not our own masters.
We are God's property. Is it not
our happiness thus to view the matter?
Is it any happiness, or any comfort, to consider that we are our
own? It may be thought so by the young
and prosperous. These may think it a
great thing to have everything, as they suppose, their own way - to depend on
no-one - to have to think of nothing out of sight, to be without the
irksomeness of continual acknowledgement, continual prayer, continual reference
of what they do to the will of another.
But as time goes on, they, as all men, will find that independence was
not made for man - that it is an unnatural state - will do for a while, but will not carry us on safely
to the end ...'" Mustapha Mond
paused, put down the first book and, picking up the other, turned over the
pages. "Take this, for
example," he said, and in his deep voice once more began to read: "'A
man grows old; he feels in himself that radical sense of weakness, of listlessness,
of discomfort, which accompanies the advance of age; and, feeling thus,
imagines himself merely sick, lulling his fears with the notion that this
distressing condition is due to some particular cause, from which, as from an
illness, he hopes to recover. Vain imaginings! That sickness is old age; and a horrible
disease it is. They say that it is the
fear of death and of what comes after death that makes men turn to religion as
they advance in years. But my own
experience has given me the conviction that, quite apart from any such terrors
or imaginings, the religious sentiment tends to develop as we grow older; to
develop because, as the passions grow calm, as the fancy and sensibilities are
less excited and less excitable, our reason becomes less troubled in its
working, less obscured by the images, desires and distractions, in which it
used to be absorbed; whereupon God emerges as from behind a cloud; our soul
feels, sees, turns towards the source of all light; turns naturally and
inevitably; for now that all that gave to the world of sensations its life and
charm has begun to leak away from us, now that phenomenal existence is no more
bolstered up by impressions from within or from without, we feel the need to
lean on something that abides, something that will never play us false - a
reality, an absolute and everlasting truth.
Yes, we inevitably turn to God; for this religious sentiment is of its
nature so pure, so delightful to the soul that experiences it, that it makes up
to us for all our other losses.'"
Mustapha Mond shut the book and leaned back in his chair. "One of the numerous things in heaven
and earth that these philosophers didn't dream about was this' (he waved his
hand), ‘us, the modern world. “You can
only be independent of God while you've got youth and prosperity; independence
won't take you safely to the end."
Well, we've now got youth and prosperity right up to the end. What follows?
Evidently, that we can be independent of God. 'The religious sentiment will compensate us
for all our losses.' But there aren't
any losses for us to compensate; religious sentiment is superfluous. And why should we go hunting for a substitute
for youthful desires, when youthful desires never fail? A substitute for distractions, when we go on
enjoying all the old fooleries to the very last? What need have we of repose when our minds
and bodies continue to delight in activity? of consolation, when we have soma?
of something immovable, when there is the social order?"
"Then you think there is no
God?"
"No, I think there quite probably is
one."
"Then why ...?"
Mustapha Mond checked him. "But he manifests himself in different
ways to different men. In pre-modern
times he manifested himself as the being that's described in these books. Now ..."
"How does he manifest himself
now?" asked the Savage.
"Well, he manifests himself as an
absence; as though he weren't there at all."
"That's your fault."
"Call it the fault of
civilization. God isn't compatible with
machinery and scientific medicine and universal happiness. You must make your choice. Our civilization has chosen machinery and
medicine and happiness. That's why I
have to keep these books locked up in the safe.
They're smut. People would be
shocked if ..."
The Savage interrupted him. "But isn't it natural to feel
there's a God?"
"You might as well ask if it's
natural to do up one's trousers with zippers," said the Controller
sarcastically. "You remind me of
another of these old fellows called Bradley.
He defined philosophy as the finding of bad reason for what one believes
by instinct. As if one believed anything
by instinct! One believes things because
one has been conditioned to believe them.
Finding bad reasons for what one believes for other bad reasons - that's
philosophy. People believe in God
because they've been conditioned to believe in God."
"But all the same," insisted
the Savage, "it is natural to believe in god when you're alone - quite
alone, in the night, thinking about death ..."
"But people never are alone
now," said Mustapha Mond. "We
make them hate solitude; and we arrange their lives so that it's almost
impossible for them ever to have it."
The Savage nodded gloomily. At Malpais he had suffered because they had
shut him out from the communal activities of the pueblo, in civilized London he
was suffering because he could never escape from those communal activities,
never be quietly alone.
"Do you remember that bit in King
Lear?" said the Savage at last: "'The gods are just, and of our
pleasant vices make instruments to plague us; the dark and vicious place where
thee he got cost him his eyes,' and Edmund answers - you remember, he's
wounded, he's dying - 'Thou hast spoken right; 'tis true. The wheel is come full circle; I am
here.' What about that, now? Doesn't there seem to be a God managing
things, punishing, rewarding?"
"Well, does there?" questioned
the Controller in his turn. "You
can indulge in any number of pleasant vices with a freemartin and run no risks
of having your eyes put out by your son's mistress. 'The wheel is come full circle; I am
here.' But where would Edmund be
nowadays? Sitting in a pneumatic chair,
with his arm round a girl's waist, sucking away at his sex-hormone chewing-gum
and looking at the feelies. The gods are
just. No doubt. But their code of law is dictated, in the
last resort, by the people who organize society; Providence takes its cue from
men."
"Are you sure?" asked the
Savage. "Are you quite sure that
the Edmund in that pneumatic chair hasn't been just as heavily punished as the
Edmund who's wounded and bleeding to death?
The gods are just. Haven't they
used his pleasant voice as an instrument to degrade him?"
"Degrade him from what
position? As a happy, hard-working,
good-consuming citizen he's perfect. Of course,
if you choose some other standard than ours, then perhaps you might say he was
degraded. But you've got to stick to one
set of postulates. You can't play
Electro-magnetic Golf according to the rules of Centrifugal Bumble-puppy."
"But value dwells not in particular
will," said the Savage. "It
holds his estimate and dignity as well wherein 'tis previous of itself as in
the prizer."
"Come, come," protested
Mustapha Mond, "that's going rather far, isn't it?"
"If you allowed yourselves to think
of God, you wouldn't allow yourself to be degraded by pleasant vices. You'd have a reason for bearing things
patiently, for doing things with courage.
I've seen it with the Indians."
"I'm sure you have," said
Mustapha Mond. "But then we aren't
Indians. There isn't any need for a
civilized man to bear anything that's seriously unpleasant. And as for doing things - Ford forbid that he
should get the idea into his head. It
would upset the whole social order if men started doing things on their
own."
"What about self-denial, then? If you had a God, you'd have a reason for
self-denial."
"But industrial civilization is only
possible when there's no self-denial.
Self-indulgence up to the very limits imposed by hygiene and
economics. Otherwise the wheels stop
turning."
"You'd have a reason for
chastity!" said the Savage, blushing a little as he spoke the words.
"But chastity means passion,
chastity means neurasthenia. And passion
and neurasthenia mean instability. And
instability means the end of civilization.
You can't have a lasting civilization without plenty of pleasant
vices."
"But God's the reason for everything
noble and fine and heroic. If you had a
God ..."
"My dear young friend," said
Mustapha Mond, "civilization has absolutely no need of nobility or
heroism. These things are symptoms of
political inefficiency. In a properly
organized society like ours, nobody has any opportunities for being noble or
heroic. Conditions have got to be
thoroughly unstable before the occasion can arise. Where there are wars, where there are divided
allegiances, where there are temptations to be resisted, objects of love to be
fought for or defended - there, obviously, nobility and heroism have some
sense. But there aren't any wars
nowadays. The greatest care is taken to
prevent you from loving anyone too much.
There's no such things as a divided allegiance; you're so conditioned
that you can't help doing what you ought to do.
And what you ought to do is on the whole so pleasant, so many of the
natural impulses are allowed free play, that there really aren't any
temptations to resist. And if ever, by
some unlucky chance, anything unpleasant should somehow happen, why, there's
always soma to give you a holiday from the facts. And there's always soma to calm your
anger, to reconcile you to your enemies, to make you patient and
long-suffering. In the past you could
only accomplish these things by making a great effort and after years of hard
moral training. Now, you swallow two or
three half-gramme tablets, and there you are.
Anybody can be virtuous now. You
can carry at least half your morality about in a bottle. Christianity without tears - that's what soma
is."
"But the tears are necessary. Don't you remember what Othello said? 'If after every tempest came such calms, may
the winds blow till they have wakened death.'
There's a story one of the old Indians used to tell us, about the girl
of Mátsaki. The young men who wanted to
marry her had to do a morning's hoeing in her garden. It seemed easy; but there were flies and
mosquitoes, magic ones. Most of the
young men simply couldn't stand the biting and stinging. But the one that could - he got the
girl."
"Charming! But in civilized countries," said the
Controller, "you can have girls without hoeing for them; and there aren't
any flies or mosquitoes to sting you. We
got rid of them all centuries ago."
The Savage nodded, frowning. "You got rid of them. Yes, that's just like you. Getting rid of everything unpleasant instead
of learning to put up with it. Whether
'tis nobler in the mind to suffer the slings and arrows of outrageous fortune,
or to take arms against a sea of troubles and by opposing end them ... But you
don't do either. Neither suffer nor
oppose. You just abolish the slings and
arrows. It's too easy."
He was suddenly silent, thinking of his
mother. In her room on the
thirty-seventh floor, Linda had floated in a sea of singing lights and perfumed
caresses - floated away, out of space, out of time, out of the prison of her
memories, her habits, her aged and bloated body. And Tomakin, ex-Director of Hatcheries and
Conditioning, Tomakin was still on holiday - on holiday from humiliation and
pain, in a world where he could not hear those words, that derisive laughter,
could not see that hideous face, feel those moist and flabby arms round his
neck, in a beautiful world ...
"What you need," the Savage
went on, "is something with tears for a change. Nothing costs enough here."
("Twelve and a half million
dollars," Henry Foster had protested when the Savage told him that. "Twelve and a half million - that's what
the new Conditioning Centre cost. Not a
cent less.")
"Exposing what is mortal and unsure
to all that fortune, death and danger dare, even for an egg-shell. Isn't there something in that?" he
asked, looking up at Mustapha Mond.
"Quite apart from God - though of course God would be a reason for
it. Isn't there something in living
dangerously?"
"There's a great deal in it,"
the Controller replied. "Men and
women must have their adrenals stimulated from time to time."
"What?" questioned the Savage,
uncomprehending.
"It's one of the conditions of
perfect health. That's why we've made
the V.P.S. treatments compulsory."
"V.P.S.?"
"Violent Passion Surrogate. Regularly once a month. We flood the whole system with adrenin. It's the complete physiological equivalent of
fear and rage. All the tonic effects of
murdering Desdemona and being murdered by Othello, without any of the
inconveniences."
"But I like the inconveniences."
"We don't," said the
Controller. "We prefer to do things
comfortably."
"But I don't want comfort. I want God, I want poetry, I want real
danger, I want freedom, I want goodness.
I want sin."
"In fact," said Mustapha Mond,
"you're claiming the right to be unhappy."
"All right, then," said the
Savage defiantly. "I'm claiming the
right to be unhappy."
"Not to mention the right to grow
old and ugly and impotent; the right to have syphilis and cancer; the right to
have too little to eat; the right to be lousy; the right to live in constant
apprehension of what may happen tomorrow; the right to catch typhoid; the right
to be tortured by unspeakable pains of every kind."
There was a long silence.
"I claim them all," said the Savage
at last.
Mustapha Mond shrugged his
shoulders. "You're welcome,"
he said.
Chapter XVIII
The door
was ajar; they entered.
"John!"
From the bathroom came an unpleasant and
characteristic sound.
"Is there anything the matter?"
Helmholtz called.
There was no answer. The unpleasant sound was repeated, twice;
there was silence. Then, with a click,
the bathroom door opened and, very pale, the Savage emerged.
"I say!" Helmholtz exclaimed
solicitously, "you do look ill, John!"
"Did you eat something that didn't
agree with you?" asked Bernard.
The Savage nodded. "I ate civilization."
"What?"
"It poisoned me; I was defiled. And then," he added, in a lower tone,
"I ate my own wickedness."
"Yes, but what exactly ...? I mean, just now you were ..."
"Now I am purified," said the
Savage. "I drank some mustard and
warm water."
The others stared at him in
astonishment. "Do you mean to say
that you were doing it on purpose?" asked Bernard.
"That's how the Indians always
purify themselves." He sat down
and, sighing, passed his hand across his forehead. "I shall rest for a few minutes,"
he said. "I'm rather tired."
"Well, I'm not surprised," said
Helmholtz. After a silence, "We've
come to say goodbye," he went on in another tone. We're off tomorrow morning."
"Yes, we're off tomorrow," said
Bernard, on whose face the Savage remarked a new expression of determined
resignation. "And by the way,
John," he continued, leaning forward in his chair and laying a hand on the
Savage's knee, "I want to say how sorry I am about everything that
happened yesterday." He
blushed. "How ashamed," he
went on, in spite of the unsteadiness of his voice, "how really ..."
The Savage cut him short and, taking his
hand, affectionately pressed it.
"Helmholtz was wonderful to
me," Bernard resumed, after a little pause. "If it hadn't been for him I should
..."
"Now, now," Helmholtz
protested.
There was a silence. In spite of their sadness - because of it,
even; for their sadness was the symptom of their love for one another - the
three young men were happy.
"I went to see the Controller this
morning," said the Savage at last.
"What for?"
"To ask if I mightn't go to the
islands with you."
"And what did he say?" asked
Helmholtz eagerly.
The Savage shook his head. "He wouldn't let me."
"Why not?"
"He said he wanted to go on with the
experiment. But I'm damned," the
Savage added, with sudden fury, "I'm damned if I'll go on being
experimented with. Not for all the
Controllers in the world. I shall
go away tomorrow too."
"But where?" the others asked
in unison.
The Savage shrugged his shoulders. "Anywhere. I don't care.
So long as I can be alone."
From Guildford the down-line followed the
Wey valley to Godalming, then, over Milford and Witley, proceeded to Haslemere
and on through Petersfield towards Portsmouth.
Roughly parallel to it, the up-line passed over Worplesden, Tongham,
Puttenham, Elstead and Grayshott.
Between the Hog's Back and Hindhead there were points where the two
lines were not more than six or seven kilometres apart. The distance was too small for careless
flyers - particularly at night and when they had taken half a gramme too
much. There had been accidents. Serious ones.
It has been decided to deflect the up-line a few kilometres to the
west. Between Grayshott and Tongham four
abandoned air-lighthouses marked the course of the old Portsmouth-to-London
road. The skies above them were silent
and deserted. It was over Selborne,
Borden and Farnham that the helicopters now ceaselessly hummed and roared.
The Savage had chosen as his hermitage
the old lighthouse which stood on the crest of the hill between Puttenham and
Elstead. The building was of
ferro-concrete and in excellent condition - almost too comfortable, the Savage
had thought when he first explored the place, almost too civilizedly
luxurious. He pacified his conscience by
promising himself a compensatingly harder self-discipline, purifications the
more complete and thorough. His first
night in the hermitage was, deliberately, a sleepless one. He spent the hours on his knees praying, now
to that Heaven from which the guilty Claudius had begged forgiveness, now in
Zuńi to Awonawilona, now to Jesus and Pookong, now to his own guardian animal,
the eagle. From time to time he
stretched out his arms as though he were on the cross, and held them thus
through long minutes of an ache that gradually increased till it became a
tremulous and excruciating agony; held them, in voluntary crucifixion, while he
repeated, through clenched teeth (the sweat, meanwhile, pouring down his face),
"Oh, forgive me! Oh, make me
pure! Oh, help me to be good!"
again and again, till he was on the point of fainting from the pain.
When morning came, he felt he had earned
the right to inhabit the lighthouse; yes, even there still was glass in
most of the windows, even though the view from the platform was so
fine. For the very reason why he had
chosen the lighthouse had become almost instantly a reason for going somewhere
else. He had decided to live there
because the view was so beautiful, because, from his vantage point, he seemed
to be looking out on to the incarnation of a divine being. But who was he to be pampered with the daily
and hourly sight of loveliness? Who was
he to be living in the visible presence of god?
All he deserved to live in was some filthy sty, some blind hole in the
ground. Stiff and aching after his long
night of pain, but for that very reason inwardly reassured, he climbed up to
the platform of his tower, he looked out over the bright sunrise world which he
had regained the right to inhabit. On
the north the view was bounded by the long chalk ridge of the Hog's Back, from
behind whose eastern extremity rose the towers of the seven skyscrapers which
constituted Guildford. Seeing them, the
Savage made a grimace; but he was to become reconciled to them in [the] course
of time; for at night they twinkled gaily with geometrical constellations, or
else, floodlighted, pointed their luminous fingers (with a gesture whose significance
nobody in England but the Savage now understood) solemnly towards the plumbless
mysteries of heaven.
In the valley which separated the Hog's
Back from the sandy hill on which the lighthouse stood, Puttenham was a modest
little village nine stories high, with silos, a poultry farm, and a small
vitamin-D factory. On the other side of
the lighthouse, towards the south, the ground fell away in long slopes of
heather to a chain of ponds.
Beyond them, above the intervening woods,
rose the fourteen-storey tower of Elstead.
Dim in the hazy English air, Hindhead and Selborne invited the eyes into
a blue romantic distance. But it was not
alone the distance which had attracted the Savage to his lighthouse; the near
was as seductive as the far. The woods,
the open stretches of heather and yellow gorse, the clumps of Scotch firs, the
shining ponds with their overhanging birch trees, their water lilies, their
beds of rushes - these were beautiful and, to an eye accustomed to the
aridities of the American desert, astonishing.
And then the solitude! Whole days
passed during which he never saw a human being.
The lighthouse was only a quarter of an hour's flight from the Charing-T
Tower; but the hills of Malpais were hardly more deserted than this Surrey
heath. The crowds that daily left London
left it only to play Electro-magnetic Golf or Tennis. Puttenham possessed no
links; the nearest Riemann-surfaces were at Guildford. Flowers and a landscape were the only
attractions here. And so, as there was no good reason for coming, nobody
came. During the first days the Savage
lived alone and undisturbed.
Of the money which, on his first arrival,
John had received for his personal expenses, most had been spent on his
equipment. Before leaving London he had
bought four viscose-woollen blankets, rope and string, nails, glue, a few
tools, matches (though he intended in due course to make a fire drill), some
pots and pans, two dozen packets of seeds, and two kilogrammes of wheat
flour. "No, not synthetic
starch and cotton-waste flour-substitute," he had insisted. "Even though it is more
nourishing." But when it came to
pan-glandular biscuits and vitaminized beef-surrogate, he had not been able to
resist the shopman's persuasion. Looking
at the tins now, he bitterly reproached himself for his weakness. Loathsome civilized stuff! He had made up his mind that he would never
eat it, even if he were starving.
"That'll teach them," he thought vindictively. It would also teach him.
He counted his money. The little that remained would be enough, he
hoped, to tide him over the winter. By
next spring, his garden would be producing enough to make him independent of
the outside world. Meanwhile, there
would always be game. He had seen plenty
of rabbits, and there were waterfowl on the ponds. He set to work at once to make a bow and
arrows.
There were ash trees near the lighthouse
and, for arrow shafts, a whole copse full of beautifully straight hazel
saplings. He began by felling a young
ash, cut out six feet of unbranched stem, stripped off the bark and, paring by
paring, shaved away the white wood, as old Mitsima had taught him, until he had
a stave of his own height, stiff at the thickened centre, lively and quick at
the slender tips. The work gave him an
intense pleasure. After those weeks of
idleness in London, with nothing to do, whenever he wanted anything, but to
press a switch or turn a handle, it was pure delight to be doing something that
demanded skill and patience.
He had almost finished whittling the stave
into shape, when he realized with a start that he was singing - singing! It was as though, stumbling upon himself from
the outside, he had suddenly caught himself out, taken himself flagrantly at
fault. Guiltily he blushed. After all, it was not to sing and enjoy
himself that he had come here. It was to
escape further contamination by the filth of civilized life; it was to be
purified and made good; it was actively to make amends. He realized to his dismay that, absorbed in
the whittling of his bow, he had forgotten what he had sworn to himself he
would constantly remember - poor Linda, and his own murderous unkindness to
her, and those loathsome twins, swarming like lice across the mystery of her
death, insulting, with their presence, not merely his own grief and repentance,
but the very gods themselves. He had
sworn to remember, he had sworn unceasingly to make amends. And here was he, sitting happily over his
bow-stave, singing, actually singing ...
He went indoors, opened the box of
mustard, and put some water to boil on the fire.
Half an hour later, three Delta-Minus
landworkers from one of the Puttenham Bokanovsky Groups happened to be driving
to Elstead and, at the top of the hill, were astonished to see a young man
standing outside the abandoned lighthouse stripped to the waist and hitting
himself with a whip of knotted cords.
His back was horizontally streaked with crimson, and from weal to weal
ran thin trickles of blood. The driver
of the lorry pulled up at the side of the road and, with his two companions,
stared open-mouthed at the extraordinary spectacle. One, two, three - they counted the
strokes. After the eight, the young man
interrupted his self-punishment to run to the wood's edge and there be
violently sick. When he had finished, he
picked up the whip and began hitting himself again. Nine, ten, eleven, twelve ...
"Ford!" whispered the
driver. And his twins were of the same
opinion.
"Fordey!" they said.
Three days later, like turkey buzzards
settling on a corpse, the reporters came.
Dried and hardened over a slow fire of
green wood, the bow was ready. The
Savage was busy on his arrows. Thirty
hazel sticks had been whittled and dried, tipped with sharp nails, carefully
nocked. He had made a raid one night on
the Puttenham poultry farm, and now had feathers enough to equip a whole
armoury. It was at work upon the
feathering of his shafts that the first of the reporters found him. Noiseless on his pneumatic shoes, the man
came up behind him.
"Good-morning, Mr Savage," he
said. "I am the representative of The
Hourly Radio."
Startled as though by the bite of a
snake, the Savage sprang to his feet, scattering arrows, feathers, glue-pot and
brush in all directions.
"I beg your pardon," said the
reporter, with genuine compunction.
"I had no intention ...” He touched his hat - the aluminium
stove-pipe hat in which he carried his wireless receiver and transmitter. "Excuse me for not taking it off,"
he said. "It's a bit heavy. Well, as I was saying, I am the representative
of The Hourly ..."
"What do you want?" asked the
Savage, scowling. The reporter returned
his most ingratiating smile.
"Well, of course, our readers would
be profoundly interested ...” He put his head on one side, his smile became
almost coquettish. "Just a few
words from you, Mr Savage."
And rapidly, with a series of ritual
gestures, he uncoiled two wires connected to the portable battery buckled round
his waist; plugged them simultaneously into the sides of his aluminium hat;
touched a spring on the crown - and antennae shot up into the air; touched
another spring on the peak of the brim - and, like a jack-in-the-box, out
jumped a microphone and hung there, quivering, six inches in front of his nose;
pulled down a pair of receivers over his ears; pressed a switch on the left
side of the hat - and from within came a faint waspy buzzing; turned a knob on
the right - and the buzzing was interrupted by a stethoscopic wheeze and
crackle, by hiccoughs and sudden squeaks.
"Hullo," he said to the microphone, "hello, hello ...” A
bell suddenly rang inside his hat.
"Is that you, Edzel? Primo
Mellon speaking. Yes, I've got hold of
him. Mr Savage will now take the
microphone and say a few words. Won't
you, Mr Savage?" He looked up at
the Savage with another of those winning smiles of his. "Just tell our readers why you came
here. What made you leave London (hold
on, Edzel!) so very suddenly. And, of
course, that whip." (The Savage
started. How did they know about the
whip?) "We're all crazy to know about
the whip. And then something about
Civilization. You know the sort of
stuff. 'What I think of the Civilized
Girl.' Just a few words, a very few
..."
The Savage obeyed with a disconcerting
literalness. Five words he uttered and
no more - five words, the same as those he had said to Bernard about the
Arch-Community Songster of Canterbury. "Háni! Sons éso tse-ná!" And seizing the reporter by the shoulder,
he spun him round (the young man revealed himself invitingly well-covered),
aimed and, with all the force and accuracy of a champion foot-and-mouth-baller,
delivered a most prodigious kick.
Eight minutes later, a new edition of The
Hourly Radio was on sale in the streets of London. "HOURLY RADIO REPORTER HAS COCCYX KICKED BY MYSTERY SAVAGE,"
ran the headlines on the front page.
"SENSATION IN SURREY."
"Sensation even in London,"
thought the reporter when, on his return, he read the words. And a very painful sensation, what was
more. He sat down gingerly to his luncheon.
Undeterred by that cautionary bruise on
their colleague's coccyx, four other reporters, representing the New York Times,
the Frankfort Four-Dimensional Continuum, The Fordian Science Monitor,
and The Delta Mirror, called that afternoon at the lighthouse and
met with receptions of progressively increasing violence.
From a safe distance and still rubbing
his buttocks, "Benighted fool!" shouted the man from The Fordian
Science Monitor, "why don't you take soma."
"Get away!" The Savage shook his fist.
The other retreated a few steps, then
turned round again. "Evil's an
unreality if you take a couple of grammes."
"Kohakwa iyathtokyai!" The tone was menacingly derisive.
"Pain's a delusion."
"Oh, is it?" said the Savage
and, picking up a thick hazel switch, strode forward.
The man from The Fordian Science
Monitor made a dash for his helicopter.
After that the Savage was left for a time
in peace. A few helicopters came and
hovered inquisitively round the tower.
He shot an arrow into the importunately nearest of them. It pierced the aluminium floor of the cabin;
there was a shrill yell, and the machine went rocketing up into the air with
all the acceleration that its super-charger could give it. The others, in future, kept their distance
respectfully. Ignoring their tiresome
humming (he likened himself in his imagination to one of the suitors of the
Maiden of Mátsaki, unmoved and persistent among the winged vermin), the Savage
dug at what was to be his garden. After
a time the vermin evidently became bored and flew away; for hours at a stretch
the sky above his head was empty and, but for the larks, silent.
The weather was breathlessly hot, there
was thunder in the air. He had dug all
the morning and was resting, stretched out along the floor. And suddenly the thought of Lenina was a real
presence, naked and tangible, saying "Sweet!" and "Put your arms
round me!" - in shoes and socks, perfumed.
Impudent strumpet! But oh, oh,
her arms round his neck, the lifting of her breasts, her mouth! Eternity was in our lips and eyes. Lenina ... No, no, no, no! He sprang to his feet and, half naked as he
was, ran out of the house. At the edge
of the heath stood a clump of hoary juniper bushes. He flung himself against them, he embraced,
not the smooth body of his desires, but an armful of green spikes. Sharp, with a thousand points, they pricked
him. He tried to think of poor Linda,
breathless and dumb, with her clutching hands and the unutterable terror in her
eyes. Poor Linda whom he had sworn to
remember. But it was still the presence
of Lenina that haunted him. Lenina whom
he had promised to forget. Even through
the stab and sting of the juniper needles, his wincing flesh was aware of her,
unescapably real. "Sweet, sweet ...
And if you wanted me too, why didn't you ..."
The whip was hanging on a nail by the
door, ready to hand against the arrival of reporters. In a frenzy the Savage ran back to the house,
seized it, whirled it. The knotted cords
bit into his flesh.
"Strumpet! Strumpet!" he shouted at every blow as though
it were Lenina (and how frantically, without knowing it, he wished it were!),
white, warm, scented, infamous Lenina that he was flogging thus. "Strumpet!" And then, in a voice of despair, "Oh,
Linda, forgive me. Forgive me, God. I'm bad.
I'm wicked. I'm ... No, no, you
strumpet, you strumpet!"
From his carefully constructed hide in
the wood, three hundred metres away, Darwin Bonaparte, the Feely Corporation's
most expert big-game photographer, had watched the whole proceedings. Patience and skill had been rewarded. He had spent three days sitting inside the
bole of artificial oak tree, three nights crawling on his belly through the
heather, hiding microphones in gorse bushes, burying wires in the soft grey
sand. Seventy-two hours of profound
discomfort. But now the great moment had
come - the greatest, Darwin Bonaparte had time to reflect, as he moved among
his instruments, the greatest since his taking of the famous all-howling
stereoscopic feely of the gorillas' wedding.
"Splendid," he said to himself, as the Savage started his
astonishing performance.
"Splendid!" He kept his
telescopic cameras carefully aimed - glued to their moving objective; clapped
on a higher power to get a close-up of the frantic and distorted face
(admirable!); switched over, for half a minute, to slow motion (an exquisitely
comical effect, he promised himself); listened-in, meanwhile, to the blows, the
groans, the wild and raving words that were being recorded on the soundtrack at
the edge of his film, tried the effect of a little amplification (yes, that was
decidedly better); was delighted to hear, in a momentary lull, the shrill
singing of a lark; wished the Savage would turn round so that he could get a
good close-up of the blood on his back - and almost instantly (what astonishing
luck!) the accommodating fellow did turn round, and he was able to take a
perfect close-up.
"Well, that was grand!" he said
to himself when it was all over.
"Really grand!" He
mopped his face. When they had put in
the feely effects in the studio, it would be a wonderful film. Almost as good, thought Darwin Bonaparte, as
the Sperm Whale's Love-Life - and that, by Ford, was saying a good deal!
Twelve days later, The Savage of
Surrey had been released and could be seen, heard and felt in every
first-class feely-palace in Western Europe.
The effect of Darwin Bonaparte's film was
immediate and enormous. On the afternoon
which followed the evening of its release, John's rustic solitude was suddenly
broken by the arrival overhead of a great swarm of helicopters.
He was digging in his garden - digging,
too, in his own mind, laboriously turning up the substance of his thought. Death - and he drove in his spade once, and
again, and yet again. And all our
yesterdays have lighted fools the way to dusty death. A convincing thunder rumbled through the
words. He lifted another spadeful of
earth. Why had Linda died? Why had she been allowed to become gradually
less than human and at last ... He shuddered.
A good kissing carrion. He planted
his foot on his spade and stamped it fiercely into the tough ground. As flies to wanton boys are we to the gods;
they kill us for their sport. Thunder
again; words that proclaimed themselves true - truer somehow than truth
itself. And yet that same Gloucester had
called them ever-gentle gods. Besides,
thy best of rest is sleep, and that thus oft provok'st; yet grossly fear'st thy
death which is no more. No more than
sleep. Sleep. Perchance to dream. His spade struck against a stone; he stooped
to pick it up. For in that sleep of
death, what dreams...?
A humming overhead had become a roar; and
suddenly he was in shadow, there was something between the sun and him. He looked up, startled, from his digging,
from his thoughts; looked up in a dazzled bewilderment, his mind still
wandering in that other world of truer-than-truth, still focused on the
immensities of death and deity; looked up and saw, close above him, the swarm
of hovering machines. Like locusts they
came, hung poised, descended all around him on the heather. And from out of the bellies of these giant
grasshoppers stepped men in white viscose-flannels, women (for the weather was
hot) in acetate-shantung pyjamas or velveteen shorts and sleeveless,
half-unzippered singlets - one couple from each. In a few minutes there were dozens of them,
standing in a wide circle round the lighthouse, staring, laughing, clicking
their cameras, throwing (as to an ape) peanuts, packets of sex-hormone
chewing-gum, pan-glandular petits beurres. And every moment - for across the Hog's Back
the stream of traffic now flowed unceasingly - their numbers increased. As in a nightmare, the dozens became scores,
the scores hundreds.
The Savage had retreated towards cover,
and now, in the posture of an animal at bay, stood with his back to the wall of
the lighthouse, staring from face to face in speechless horror, like a man out
of his senses.
From this stupor he was aroused to a more
immediate sense of reality by the impact on his cheek of a well-aimed packed of
chewing-gum. A shock of startling pain -
and he was broad awake, awake and fiercely angry.
"Go away!" he shouted.
The ape had spoken; there was a burst of
laughter and hand-clapping. "Good
old Savage! Hurrah, hurrah!" And through the babel he heard cries of:
"Whip, whip, the whip!"
Acting on the word's suggestion, he
seized the bunch of knotted cords from its nail behind the door and shook it at
his tormentors.
There was a yell of ironical applause.
Menacingly he advanced towards them. A woman cried out in fear. The line wavered at its most immediately
threatened point, then stiffened again, stood firm. The consciousness of being in overwhelming
force had given these sightseers a courage which the Savage had not expected of
them. Taken aback, he halted and looked
round.
"Why don't you leave me
alone?" There was an almost
plaintive note in his anger.
"Have a few magnesium-salted
almonds!" said the man who, if the Savage were to advance, would be the
first to be attacked. He held out a
packet. "They're really very good,
you know," he added, with a rather nervous smile of propitiation. "And the magnesium salts will help to
keep you young."
The Savage ignored his offer. "What do you want with me?" he
asked, turning from one grinning face to another. "What do you want with me?"
"The whip," answered a hundred
voices confusedly. "Do the whipping
stunt. Let's see the whipping
stunt."
Then, in unison and on a slow, heavy
rhythm, "We - want - the whip," shouted a group at the end of the
line. "We - want - the whip."
Others at once took up the cry, and the
phrase was repeated, parrot-fashion, again and again, with an ever-growing
volume of sound, until, by the seventh or eight reiteration, no other word was
being spoken. "We - want - the
whip."
They were all crying together; and,
intoxicated by the noise, the unanimity, the sense of rhythmical atonement,
they might, it seemed, have gone on for hours - almost indefinitely. But at about the twenty-fifth repetition the
proceedings were startlingly interrupted. Yet another helicopter had arrived
from across the Hog's Back, hung poised above the crowd, then dropped within a
few yards of where the Savage was standing, in the open space between the line
of sightseers and the lighthouse. The
roar of the air screws momentarily drowned the shouting; then, as the machine
touched the ground and the engines were turned off: "We - want - the whip;
we - want - the whip," broke out again in the same loud, insistent
monotone.
The door of the helicopter opened, and
out stepped, first a fair and ruddy-faced young man, then, in green velveteen
short, white shirt, and jockey cap, a young woman.
At the sight of the young woman, the
Savage started, recoiled, turned pale.
The young woman stood, smiling at him -
an uncertain, imploring, almost abject smile.
The seconds passed. Her lips
moved, she was saying something; but the sound of her voice was covered by the
loud reiterated refrain of the sightseers.
"We - want - the whip! We - want - the whip!"
The young woman pressed both hands to her
left side, and on that peach-bright, doll-beautiful face of hers appeared a
strangely incongruous expression of yearning distress. Her blue eyes seemed to grow larger,
brighter; and suddenly two tears rolled down her cheeks. Inaudibly, she spoke again; then, with a
quick, impassioned gesture, stretched out her arms towards the Savage, stepped
forward.
"We - want - the whip! We - want ..."
And all of a sudden they had what they
wanted.
"Strumpet!" The Savage had rushed at her like a
madman. "Fitchew!" Like a madman, he was slashing at her with
his whip of small cords.
Terrified, she had turned to flee, had
tripped and fallen in the heather.
"Henry! Henry!" she
shouted. But her ruddy-faced companion
had bolted out of harm's way behind the helicopter.
With a whoop of delighted excitement the
line broke; there was a convergent stampede towards that magnetic centre of
attraction. Pain was a fascinating
horror.
"Fry, lechery, fry!" Frenzied, the Savage slashed again.
Hungrily they gathered round, pushing and
scrambling like swine about the trough.
"Oh, the flesh!" The Savage ground his teeth. This time it was on his shoulders that the
whip descended. "Kill it, kill it!"
Drawn by the fascination of the horror of
pain and, from within, impelled by that habit of co-operation, that desire for
unanimity and atonement, which their conditioning had so ineradicably implanted
in them, they began to mime the frenzy of his gestures, striking at one another
as the Savage struck at his own rebellious flesh, or at that plump incarnation
of turpitude writhing in the heather at his feet.
"Kill it, kill it, kill it ..."
the Savage went on shouting.
Then suddenly somebody started singing
"Orgy-porgy," and in a moment they had all caught up the refrain and,
singing, had begun to dance. Orgy-porgy,
round and round and round, beating one another in six-eight time. Orgy-porgy ...
It was after midnight when the last of
the helicopters took its flight.
Stupefied by soma, and exhausted by a long-drawn frenzy of
sensuality, the Savage lay sleeping in the heather. The sun was already high when he awoke. He lay for a moment, blinking in owlish incomprehension
at the light; then suddenly remembered - everything.
"Oh, my God, my God!" He covered his eyes with his hand.
That evening the swarm of helicopters
that came buzzing across the Hog's Back was a dark cloud ten kilometres
long. The description of last night's
orgy of atonement had been in all the papers.
"Savage!" called the first
arrivals, as they alighted from their machine.
"Mr Savage!"
There was no answer.
The door of the lighthouse was ajar. They pushed it open and walked into a
shuttered twilight. Through an archway
on the further side of the room they could see the bottom of the staircase that
led up to the higher floors. Just under
the crown of the arch dangled a pair of feet.
"Mr Savage!"
Slowly, very slowly, like two unhurried
compass needles, the feet turned towards the right; north, north-east, east,
south-east, south, south-south-west; then paused, and, after a few seconds,
turned as unhurriedly back towards the left.
South-south-west, south, south-east, east ...
BRAVE NEW WORLD (polychrome version)